The Sovereignty of God
by
A.W. Pink
Complete
and Unabridged.
CONTENTS
Foreword to the First Edition
.
................. 1352
Foreword to the Second Edition
.................... 1353
Foreword to the Third Edition
.....
............... 1354
Foreword to the Fourth Edition
......
............ 1355
Introduction
.......................
...........
.
8
1. God's Sovereignty Defined
15
2. The Sovereignty of God in Creation
.22
3. The Sovereignty of God in Administration
...
..27
4. The Sovereignty of God in Salvation
............
.40
5. The Sovereignty of God in Reprobation
........
.
67
6. The Sovereignty of God in Operation
.......
..
94
7. God's Sovereignty and the Human Will
......
..107
8. God's Sovereignty and Human Responsibility
.121
9. God's Sovereignty and Prayer
...................
138
10. Our Attitude Toward God's Sovereignty
......
.152
11. Difficulties and Objections
.....................
163
12. The Value of This Doctrine
.....................
.
.181
13. Conclusion
.....................................
194
Appendix A, The Will of God
....................
207
Appendix B, The Case of Adam
...................
211
Appendix C, The Meaning of
"Kosmos" in John 3:16
..217
Appendix D, 1 John 2:2
........................
.
220
Principal Texts Examined
....
.....................
224
Forward
to the First Edition
In the
following pages an attempt has been made to examine anew in the light of God's
Word some of the profoundest questions which can engage the human mind. Others
have grappled with these mighty problems in days gone by and from their labours
we are the gainers. While making no claim for originality the writer,
nevertheless, has endeavoured to examine and deal with his subject from an
entirely independent viewpoint. We have studied diligently the writings of such
men as Augustine and Aquinas, Calvin and Melancthon, Jonathan Edwards and Ralph
Erskine, Andrew Fuller and Robert Haldane. {a} And sad it is to think that
these eminent and honoured names are almost entirely unknown to the present
generation. Though, of course, we do not endorse all their conclusions, yet we
gladly acknowledge our deep indebtedness to their works. We have purposely
refrained from quoting freely from these deeply taught theologians, because we
desired that the faith of our readers should stand not in the wisdom of men but
in the power of God. For this reason we have quoted freely from the Scriptures
and have sought to furnish proof texts for every statement we have advanced.
It would
be foolish for us to expect that this work will meet with general approval. The
trend of modern theology--if theology it can be called--is ever toward the
deification of the creature rather than the glorification of the Creator, and
the leaven of present day Rationalism is rapidly permeating the whole of
Christendom. The malevolent effects of Darwinianism are more far reaching than
most are aware. Many of those among our religious leaders who are still
regarded as orthodox would, we fear, be found to be very heterodox if they were
weighed in the balances of the Sanctuary. Even those who are clear,
intellectually, upon other truth, are rarely sound in doctrine. Few, very few,
today, really believe in the complete ruin and total depravity of man. Those who
speak of man's "free will", and insist upon his inherent power to
either accept or reject the Saviour, do but voice their ignorance of the real
condition of Adam's fallen children. And if there are few who believe that, so
far as he is concerned, the condition of the sinner is entirely hopeless, there
are fewer still who really believe in the absolute Sovereignty of God.
In
addition to the widespread effects of unscriptural teaching, we also have to
reckon with the deplorable superficiality of the present generation. To
announce that a certain book is a treatise on doctrine is quite sufficient to
prejudice against it the great bulk of church members and most of our preachers
as well. The craving today is for something light and spicy, and few have
patience, still less desire, to examine carefully that which would make a
demand both upon their hearts and their mental powers. We remember, also, how
that it is becoming increasingly difficult in these strenuous days for those
who are desirous of studying the deeper things of God to find the time which
such study requires. Yet, it is still true that "Where there's a will,
there's a way", and in spite of the discouraging features referred to, we
believe there is even now a godly remnant who will take pleasure in giving this
little work a careful consideration, and such will, we trust, find in it
"Meat in due season."
We do
not forget the words of one long since passed away, namely, that
"Denunciation is the last resort of a defeated opponent." To dismiss
this book with the contemptuous epithet--"hyper-Calvinism"! will not
be worthy of notice. For controversy we have no taste, and we shall not accept
any challenge to enter the lists against those who might desire to debate the
truths discussed in these pages. So far as our personal reputation is
concerned, that we leave our Lord to take care of, and unto him we would now
commit this volume and whatever fruit it may bear, praying him to use it for
the enlightening of his own dear people (in so far as it is in accord with his
Holy Word) and to pardon the writer for and preserve the reader from the
injurious effects of any false teaching that may have crept into it. If the joy
and comfort which have come to the author while penning these pages are shared
by those who may scan them, then we shall be devoutly thankful to the One whose
grace alone enables us to discern spiritual things.
June 1918.
ARTHUR W. PINK.
{a}
Among those who have dealt most helpfully with the subject of God's Sovereignty
in recent years we mention Drs. Rice, J. B. Moody, and Bishop, from whose
writings we have also received instruction.
Forward to the Second Edition
It is
now two years since the first edition of this work was presented to the
Christian public. Its reception has been far more favourable than the author
had expected. Many have notified him of the help and blessing received from a
perusal of his attempts to expound what is admittedly a difficult subject. For
every word of appreciation we return hearty thanks to him in whose light we
alone "see light." A few have condemned the book in unqualified
terms, and these we commend to God and to the Word of his grace, remembering
that it is written, "a man can receive nothing, except it be given him
from Heaven" (#Joh 3:27). Others have sent us friendly criticisms and
these have been weighed carefully, and we trust that, in consequence, this
revised edition will be unto those who are members of the household of faith
more profitable than the former one.
One word
of explanation seems to be called for. A number of respected brethren in Christ
feel that our treatment of the Sovereignty of God was too extreme and one
sided. It has been pointed out that a fundamental requirement in expounding the
Word of God is the need of preserving the balance of Truth. With this we are in
hearty accord. Two things are beyond dispute: God is sovereign, and man is a
responsible creature. But in this book we are treating of the Sovereignty of
God, and while the responsibility of man is readily owned, yet, we do not pause
on every page to insist on it; instead, we have sought to stress that side of
the Truth which in these days is almost universally neglected. Probably 95 per
cent of the religious literature of the day is devoted to a setting forth of
the duties and obligations of men. The fact is that those who undertake to
expound the Responsibility of man are the very ones who have lost 'the balance
of Truth' by ignoring, very largely, the Sovereignty of God. It is perfectly
right to insist on the responsibility of man, but what of God?--has he no
claims, no rights! A hundred such works as this are needed, ten thousand
sermons would have to be preached throughout the land on this subject, if the
'balance of Truth' is to be regained. The "balance of Truth" has been
lost, lost through a disproportionate emphasis being thrown on the human side,
to the minimizing, if not the exclusion, of the Divine side. We grant that this
book is one sided, for it only pretends to deal with one side of the Truth, and
that is, the neglected side, the Divine side. Furthermore, the question might
be raised: Which is the more to be deplored--an over emphasizing of the human
side and an insufficient emphasis on the Divine side, or, an over emphasizing
of the Divine side and an insufficient emphasis on the human side? Surely, if
we err at all it is on the right side. Surely, there is far more danger of
making too much of man and too little of God, than there is of making too much
of God and too little of man. Yea, the question might well be asked, Can we
press God's claims too far? Can we be too extreme in insisting upon the
absoluteness and universality of the Sovereignty of God?
It is
with profound thankfulness to God that, after a further two years diligent
study of Holy Writ, with the earnest desire to discover what almighty God Has
been pleased to reveal to his children on this subject, we are able to testify
that we see no reason for making any retractions from what we wrote before, and
while we have rearranged the material of this work, the substance and doctrine
of it remains unchanged. May the One who condescended to bless the first
edition of this work be pleased to own even more widely this revision.
Arthur W. Pink, 1921.
Swengel, Pa.
Forward to the Third Edition
That a
third edition of this work is now called for, is a cause of fervent praise to
God. As the darkness deepens and the pretentions of men are taking on an ever
increasing blatancy, the need becomes greater for the claims of God to be
emphasised. As the twentieth century Babel of religious tongues is bewildering
so many, the duty of God's servants to point to the one sure anchorage for the
heart, is the more apparent. Nothing is so tranquillising and so stabilising as
the assurance that the Lord himself is on the throne of the universe,
"working all things after the counsel of his own will".
The Holy
Spirit has told us that there are in the Scriptures "some things hard to
be understood", but mark it is "hard" not
"impossible"! A patient waiting on the Lord, a diligent comparison of
scripture with scripture, often issues in a fuller apprehension of that which
before was obscure to us. During the last ten years it has pleased God to grant
us further light on certain parts of his Word, and this we have sought to use
in improving our expositions of different passages. But it is with unfeigned
thanksgiving that we find it unnecessary to either change or modify any
doctrine contained in the former editions. Yea, as time goes by, we realise (by
Divine grace) with ever increasing force, the truth, the importance, and the
value of the Sovereignty of God as it pertains to every branch of our lives.
Our
hearts have been made to rejoice again and again by unsolicited letters which
have come to hand from every quarter of the earth, telling of help and blessing
received from the former editions of this work. One Christian friend was so
stirred by reading it and so impressed by its testimony, that a cheque was sent
to be used in sending free copies to missionaries in fifty foreign countries,
"that its glorious message may encircle the globe"; numbers of whom
have written us to say how much they have been strengthened in their fight with
the powers of darkness. To God alone belongs all the glory. May he deign to use
this third edition to the honour of his own great Name, and to the feeding of
his scattered and starved sheep.
A. W. P. 1929, Morton's Gap, Kentucky
Foreword To The Fourth Edition
It is
with profound praise to God "most high" that another edition of this
valuable and helpful book is now called for. Though its teaching runs directly
counter to much that is being promulgated on every hand today, yet we are happy
to be able to say that its circulation is increasing to the strengthening of
the faith, comfort and hope of an increasing number of God's elect. We commit
this new edition to him whom we "delight to honour", praying that he
may be pleased to bless its circulation to the enlightening of many more of his
own, to the "praise of the glory of his grace", and a clearer
apprehension of the majesty of God and his sovereign mercy.
I.C. Herendeen, 1949
Introduction
Who is
regulating affairs on this earth today--God, or the Devil? That God reigns
supreme in Heaven, is generally conceded; that he does so over this world, is
almost universally denied--if not directly, then indirectly. More and more are
men in their philosophisings and theorisings, relegating God to the background.
Take the material realm. Not only is it denied that God created everything, by
personal and direct action, but few believe that he has any immediate concern
in regulating the works of his own hands. Everything is supposed to be ordered
according to the (impersonal and abstract) "laws of Nature". Thus is
the Creator banished from his own creation. Therefore we need not be surprised
that men, in their degrading conceptions, exclude him from the realm of human
affairs. Throughout Christendom, with an almost negligible exception, the
theory is held that man is "a free agent", and therefore, lord of his
fortunes and the determiner of his destiny. That Satan is to be blamed for much
of the evil which is in the world, is freely affirmed by those who, though
having so much to say about "the responsibility of man", often deny
their own responsibility, by attributing to the Devil what, in fact, proceeds
from their own evil hearts (#Mr 7:21-23).
But who
is regulating affairs on this earth today--God, or the Devil? Attempt to take a
serious and comprehensive view of the world. What a scene of confusion and
chaos confronts us on every side! Sin is rampant; lawlessness abounds; evil men
and seducers are waxing "worse and worse" (#2Ti 3:13). Today,
everything appears to be out of joint. Thrones are creaking and tottering,
ancient dynasties are being overturned, democracies are revolting, civilization
is a demonstrated failure; half of Christendom was but recently locked together
in a death grapple; and now that the titanic conflict is over, instead of the
world having been made "safe for democracy", we have discovered that
democracy is very unsafe for the world. Unrest, discontent, and lawlessness are
rife every where, and none can say how soon another great war will be set in
motion. Statesmen are perplexed and staggered. Men's hearts are "failing
them for fear, and for looking after those things which are coming on the
earth" (#Lu 21:26). Do these things look as though God had full control?
But let
us confine our attention to the religious realm. After nineteen centuries of Gospel
preaching, Christ is still "despised and rejected of men". Worse
still, he (the Christ of Scripture) is proclaimed and magnified by very few. In
the majority of modern pulpits he is dishonoured and disowned. Despite frantic
efforts to attract the crowds, the majority of the churches are being emptied
rather than filled. And what of the great masses of non-church goers? In the
light of Scripture we are compelled to believe that the "many" are on
the Broad Road that leadeth to destruction, and that only "few" are
on the Narrow Way that leadeth unto life. Many are declaring that Christianity
is a failure, and despair is settling on many faces. Not a few of the Lord's
own people are bewildered, and their faith is being severely tried. And what of
God? Does he see and hear? Is he impotent or indifferent? A number of those who
are regarded as leaders of Christian thought told us that, God could not help
the coming of the late awful war, and that he was unable to bring about its
termination. It was said, and said openly, that conditions were beyond God's
control. Do these things look as though God were ruling the world?
Who is
regulating affairs on this earth today--God, or the Devil? What impression is
made upon the minds of those men of the world who, occasionally, attend a
Gospel service? What are the conceptions formed by those who hear even those
preachers who are counted as "orthodox"? Is it not that a
disappointed God is the one whom Christians believe in? From what is heard from
the average evangelist today, is not any serious hearer obliged to conclude
that he professes to represent a God who is filled with benevolent intentions,
yet unable to carry them out; that he is earnestly desirous of blessing men,
but that they will not let him? Then, must not the average hearer draw the
inference that the Devil has gained the upper hand, and that God is to be
pitied rather than blamed?
But does
not everything seem to show that the Devil has far more to do with the affairs
of earth than God has? Ah, it all depends upon whether we are walking by faith,
or walking by sight. Are your thoughts, my reader, concerning this world and
God's relation to it, based upon what you see? Face this question seriously and
honestly. And if you are a Christian, you will, most probably, have cause to
bow your head with shame and sorrow, and to acknowledge that it is so. Alas, in
reality, we walk very little "by faith". But what does "walking
by faith" signify? It means that our thoughts are formed, our actions
regulated, our lives moulded by the Holy Scriptures, for, "faith cometh by
hearing, and hearing by the word of God" (#Ro 10:17). It is from the Word
of truth, and that alone, that we can learn what is God's relation to this
world.
Who is
regulating affairs on this earth today--God or the Devil? What saith the
Scriptures? Ere we consider the direct reply to this query, let it be said
that, the Scriptures predicted just what we now see and hear. The prophecy of
Jude is in course of fulfilment. It would lead us too far astray from our
present inquiry to fully amplify this assertion, but what we have particularly
in mind is a sentence in #Jude 1:8 --"Likewise also these filthy dreamers
defile the flesh, despise dominion and speak evil of dignities." Yes, they
"speak evil" of the Supreme Dignity, the "Only Potentate, the
King of kings, and Lord of lords." Ours is peculiarly an age of
irreverence, and as the consequence, the spirit of lawlessness, which brooks no
restraint and which is desirous of casting off everything which interferes with
the free course of selfwill, is rapidly engulfing the earth like some giant
tidal wave. The members of the rising
generation are the most flagrant offenders, and in the decay and disappearing
of parental authority we have the certain precursor of the abolition of civic
authority. Therefore, in view of the growing disrespect for human law and the
refusal to "render honour to whom honour is due", we need not be
surprised that the recognition of the majesty, the authority, the sovereignty
of the Almighty Lawgiver should recede more and more into the background, and
that the masses have less and less patience with those who insist upon them.
And conditions will not improve; instead, the more sure Word of Prophecy makes
known to us that they will grow worse and worse. Nor do we expect to be able to
stem the tide--it has already risen much too high for that. All we can now hope
to do is warn our fellow saints against the spirit of the age, and thus seek to
counteract its baneful influence upon them.
Who is
regulating affairs on this earth today--God, or the Devil? What saith the
Scriptures? If we believe their plain and positive declarations, no room is
left for uncertainty. They affirm, again and again, that God is on the throne
of the universe; that the sceptre is in his hands; that he is directing all
things "after the counsel of his own will". They affirm, not only
that God created all things, but also that God is ruling and reigning over all
the works of his hands. They affirm that God is the "Almighty", that
his will is irreversible, that he is absolute sovereign in every realm of all
his vast dominions. And surely it must be so. Only two alternatives are
possible: God must either rule, or be ruled; sway, or, be swayed; accomplish
his own will, or be thwarted by his creatures. Accepting the fact that he is
the "Most High", the only Potentate and King of kings, vested with
perfect wisdom and illimitable power, and the conclusion is irresistible that
he must be God in fact, as well as in name.
It is in
view of what we have briefly referred to above that we say, present day
conditions call loudly for a newexamination and new presentation of God's
omnipotency, God's sufficiency, God's sovereignty. From every pulpit in the
land it needs to be thundered forth that God still lives, that God still
observes, that God still reigns. Faith is now in the crucible, it is being
tested by fire, and there is no fixed and sufficient resting place for the
heart and mind but in the throne of God. What is needed now, as never before,
is a full, positive, constructive setting forth of the Godhood of God. Drastic
diseases call for drastic remedies. People are weary of platitudes and mere
generalisations--the call is for something definite and specific. Soothing syrup
may serve for peevish children, but an iron tonic is better suited for adults,
and we know of nothing which is more calculated to infuse spiritual vigour into
our frames than a scriptural apprehension of the full character of God. It is
written, "The people that do know their God shall be strong and do
exploits" (Da 11:32).
Without a doubt a world
crisis is at hand, and everywhere men are alarmed. But God is not! He is never taken by surprise. It is no
unexpected emergency which now confronts him, for he is the one who
"worketh all things after the counsel of his own will" (#Eph 1:11). hence, though
the world is panic stricken, the word to the believer is, "Fear not"!
"All things" are subject to his immediate control: "all
things" are moving in accord with his eternal purpose, and therefore,
"all things" are "working together for good to them that love
God, to them who are the called according to his purpose." It must be so, for "of him, and
through him, and to him are all
things" (#Ro 11:36). Yet how little is this realised today even by the people
of God! Many suppose that he is little more than a far distant spectator,
taking no immediate hand in the affairs of earth. It is true that man has a
will, but so also has God. It is true that man is endowed with power, but God
is all powerful. It is true that, speaking generally, the material world is
regulated by law, but behind that law is the law Giver and law Administrator.
Man is but the creature. God is the Creator, and endless ages before man first
saw the light "the mighty God" (#Isa
9:6) existed, and ere the world was founded,
made his plans; and being infinite in power and man only finite, his purpose
and plan cannot be withstood or thwarted by the creatures of his own hands.
We readily acknowledge that life is a profound problem, and that
we are surrounded by mystery on every side; but we are not like the beasts of
the field--ignorant of their origin, and unconscious of what is before them.
No: "We have also a more sure
Word of Prophecy", of which it is said ye do well that ye "take heed,
as unto a light that shineth in a dark place, until the day dawn, and the day
star arise in your hearts" (#2Pe 1:19). And it is
to this Word of Prophecy we indeed do well to "take heed", to that
Word which had not its origin in the mind of man but in the mind of God, for,
"the prophecy came not at any time by the will of man: but holy men of God
spake moved by the Holy Spirit." We say again, it is to this "Word" we do well to take
heed. As we turn to this Word and are instructed thereby, we discover a
fundamental principle which must be applied to every problem: Instead of
beginning with man and his world and working back to God, we must begin with
God and work down to man--"In the beginning God"! Apply this principle to the present situation. Begin
with the world as it is today and try and work back to God, and everything will
seem to show that God has no connection with the world at all. But begin with
God and work down to the world and light, much light, is cast on the problem.
Because God is Holy his anger burns
against sin; because God is righteous
his judgments fall upon those who rebel against him; because God is faithful the solemn threatenings of his
Word are fulfilled; because God is omnipotent
none can successfully resist him, still less overthrow his counsel; and because
God is omniscient no problem can
master him and no difficulty baffle his wisdom. It is just because God is who
he is and what he is that we are now beholding on earth what we do--the
beginning of his outpoured judgments: in view of his inflexible justice and
immaculate holiness we could not expect anything other than what is now spread
before our eyes.
But let it be said very emphatically that the heart can only rest
upon and enjoy the blessed truth of
the absolute sovereignty of God as faith
is in exercise. Faith is ever occupied with God. That is the character of it: that is what differentiates it
from intellectual theology. Faith endures
"as seeing him who is invisible" (#Heb 11:27): endures
the disappointments, the hardships, and the heartaches of life, by recognising
that all comes from the hand of him
who is too wise to err and too loving to be unkind. But so long as we are
occupied with any other object than God himself, there will be neither rest for
the heart nor peace for the mind. But when we receive all that enters our lives
as from his hand, then, no matter
what may be our circumstances or surroundings--whether in a hovel, a prison
dungeon, or a martyr's stake--we shall be enabled to say, "The lines are
fallen unto me in pleasant
places" (#Ps 16:6). But that is the
language of faith, not of sight or of
sense.
But if instead of bowing to the testimony of Holy Writ, if instead
of walking by faith, we follow the evidence of our eyes, and reason therefrom, we shall fall into a
quagmire of virtual atheism. Or, if we are regulated by the opinions and views
of others, peace will be at an end. Granted that there is much in this world of sin and suffering which appals and saddens
us; granted that there is much in the providential dealings of God which
startle and stagger us; that is no reason why we should unite with the
unbelieving worldling who says, "If I were God, I would not allow this or
tolerate that" etc. Better far, in the presence of bewildering mystery, to
say with one of old, "I was dumb, I opened not my mouth; because thou
didst it" (#Ps 39:9). Scripture tells us that God's judgments are "unsearchable", and his ways "past finding
out" (#Ro 11:33). It must be so if faith is to be tested, confidence in his
wisdom and righteousness strengthened, and submission to his Holy will
fostered.
Here is the fundamental difference between the man of faith and
the man of unbelief. The unbeliever is "of the world", judges
everything by worldly standards, views life from the standpoint of time and
sense, and weighs everything in the balances of his own carnal making. But the
man of faith brings in God, looks at
everything from his standpoint,
estimates values by spiritual standards, and views life in the light of
eternity. Doing this, he receives whatever comes as from the hand of God. Doing
this, his heart is calm in the midst of the storm. Doing this, he rejoices in
hope of the glory of God.
In these opening paragraphs we have indicated the lines of thought
followed out in this book. Our first postulate is that because God is God,
he does as he pleases, only as he pleases, always as he pleases; that his great
concern is the accomplishment of his own pleasure and the promotion of his own
glory; that he is the Supreme Being, and therefore Sovereign of the universe.
Starting with this postulate we have contemplated the exercise of God's Sovereignty, first in Creation, second in
Governmental Administration over the works of his hands, third in the Salvation
of his own elect, fourth in the Reprobation of the wicked, and fifth in
Operation upon and within men. Next we have viewed the Sovereignty of God as it
relates to the human will in particular and human responsibility in general,
and have sought to show what is the only becoming attitude for the creature to
take in view of the majesty of the Creator. A separate chapter has been set
apart for a consideration of some of the difficulties which are involved, and
to answering the questions which are likely to be raised in the minds of our
readers; while one chapter has been devoted to a more careful yet brief
examination of God's Sovereignty in relation to prayer. Finally, we have sought
to show that the Sovereignty of God is a truth revealed to us in Scripture for
the comfort of our hearts, the strengthening of our souls, and the blessing of
our lives. A due apprehension of God's Sovereignty promotes the spirit of
worship, provides an incentive to practical godliness, and inspires zeal in service.
It is deeply humbling to the human heart, but in proportion to the degree that
it brings man into the dust before his Maker, to that extent is God glorified.
We are well aware that what we have written is in open opposition
to much of the teaching that is current both in religious literature and in the
representative pulpits of the land. We freely grant that the postulate of God's
Sovereignty with all its corollaries is at direct variance with the opinions
and thoughts of the natural man, but the truth is, we are quite unable to
think upon these matters: we are incompetent
for forming a proper estimate of God's character and ways, and it is because of
this that God has given us a revelation of his
mind, and in that revelation he plainly declares, "My thoughts are not
your thoughts, neither are your ways my ways, saith the Lord. For as the
heavens are higher than the earth, so are my ways higher than your ways, and my
thoughts than your thoughts" (#Isa 55:8,9). In view
of this scripture, it is only to be expected that much of the contents of the
Bible conflicts with the sentiments
of the carnal mind, which is enmity
against God. Our appeal then is not to the popular beliefs of the day, nor to
the creeds of the churches, but to the Law and testimony of Jehovah. All that
we ask for is an impartial and attentive examination of what we have written,
and that, made prayerfully in the light of the Lamp of Truth. May the reader
heed the Divine admonition to prove all things; hold fast that which is good (#1Th 5:21).
Chapter 1 -- God's Sovereignty
Defined
"Thine, O Lord, is the greatness, and the power, and the
glory, and the victory, and the majesty: for all that is in the heaven and in
the earth is thine; thine is the kingdom, O Lord, and thou art exalted as head
above all" (#1Ch 29:11).
The Sovereignty of God is an expression that once was generally
understood. It was a phrase commonly
used in religious literature. It was a
theme frequently expounded in the pulpit.
It was a truth which brought comfort to many hearts, and gave virility
and stability to Christian character.
But, today, to make mention of God's sovereignty is, in many quarters,
to speak in an unknown tongue. Were we to announce from the average pulpit that
the subject of our discourse would be the sovereignty of God, it would sound
very much as though we had borrowed a phrase from one of the dead languages.
Alas! that it should be so. Alas! that the doctrine which is the key to
history, the interpreter of Providence, the warp and woof of Scripture, and the
foundation of Christian theology, should be so sadly neglected and so little
understood.
The sovereignty of God. What do we mean by this expression? We
mean the supremacy of God, the kingship of God, the godhood of God. To say that
God is sovereign is to declare that God is
God. To say that God is sovereign is to declare that he is the Most High, doing
according to his will in the army of Heaven, and among the inhabitants of the
earth, so that none can stay his hand or say unto him what doest thou? (#Da 4:35). To say that God is sovereign is to declare
that he is the Almighty, the Possessor of all power in heaven and earth, so
that none can defeat his counsels, thwart his purpose, or resist his will (#Ps 115:3). To say
that God is sovereign is to declare that he is "The Governor among the
nations" (#Ps 22:28), setting up kingdoms, overthrowing empires, and determining the
course of dynasties as pleaseth him best. To say that God is sovereign is to
declare that he is the "Only Potentate, the King of kings, and Lord of
lords" (#1Ti 6:15). Such is the God of the Bible.
How different is the God of the Bible from the God of modern
Christendom! The conception of Deity which prevails most widely today, even
among those who profess to give heed to the Scriptures, is a miserable caricature,
a blasphemous travesty of the Truth. The God of the twentieth century is a
helpless, effeminate being who commands the respect of no really thoughtful
man. The God of the popular mind is the creation of a maudlin sentimentality.
The God of many a present day pulpit is an object of pity rather than of awe
inspiring reverence. {a} To say that God the Father has purposed the salvation
of all mankind, that God the Son died with the express intention of saving the
whole human race, and that God the Holy Spirit is now seeking to win the world
to Christ; when, as a matter of common observation, it is apparent that the
great majority of our fellow men are dying in sin, and passing into a hopeless
eternity: is to say that God the Father is disappointed,
that God the Son is dissatisfied, and
that God the Holy Spirit is defeated.
We have stated the issue baldly, but there is no escaping the conclusion. To argue that God is "trying his
best" to save all mankind, but that the majority of men will not let him
save them, is to insist that the will of the Creator is impotent, and that the
will of the creature is omnipotent. To
throw the blame, as many do, upon the Devil, does not remove the difficulty,
for if Satan is defeating the purpose of God, then, Satan is Almighty and God
is no longer the Supreme Being.
To declare that the Creator's original plan has been frustrated by
sin, is to dethrone God. To suggest
that God was taken by surprise in Eden and that he is now attempting to remedy
an unforeseen calamity, is to degrade
the Most High to the level of a finite, erring mortal. To argue that man is a
free moral agent and the determiner of his own destiny, and that therefore he
has the power to checkmate his Maker, is to strip
God of the attribute of Omnipotence. To say that the creature has burst the
bounds assigned by his Creator, and that God is now practically a helpless
Spectator before the sin and suffering entailed by Adam's fall, is to repudiate the express declaration of
Holy Writ, namely, "Surely the wrath of man shall praise thee: the
remainder of wrath shalt thou
restrain" (#Ps 76:10). In a word, to deny the
sovereignty of God is to enter upon a path which, if followed to its logical
terminus, is to arrive at blank atheism.
The sovereignty of the God of Scripture is absolute, irresistible,
infinite. When we say that God is sovereign we affirm his right to govern the
universe, which he has made for his own glory, just as he pleases. We affirm
that his right is the right of the
Potter over the clay, i.e., that he may
mould that clay into whatsoever form he chooses, fashioning out of the same lump one vessel unto honour and
another unto dishonour. We affirm that he is under no rule or law outside of his
own will and nature, that God is a law
unto himself, and that he is under no obligation to give an account of his
matters to any.
Sovereignty characterises the whole Being of God. He is sovereign
in all his attributes. He is sovereign in
the exercise of his power. His power is exercised as he wills, when he
wills, where he wills. This fact is
evidenced on every page of Scripture. For a long season that power appears to
be dormant, and then it is put forth in irresistible might. Pharaoh dared to
hinder Israel from going forth to worship Jehovah in the wilderness--what
happened? God exercised his power, his people were delivered and their cruel
taskmasters slain. But a little later, the Amalekites dared to attack these
same Israelites in the wilderness, and what happened? Did God put forth his
power on this occasion and display his hand as he did at the Red Sea? Were
these enemies of his people promptly overthrown and destroyed? No, on the
contrary, the Lord swore that he would "have war with Amalek from generation
to generation" (#Ex 17:16). Again, when Israel entered the land of Canaan, God's power was
signally displayed. The city of Jericho barred their progress--what
happened? Israel did not draw a bow nor
strike a blow: the Lord stretched forth his hand and the walls fell down flat.
But the miracle was never repeated! No
other city fell after this manner.
Every other city had to be captured by the sword! Many other instances might be
adduced illustrating the sovereign exercise of God's power. Take one other
example; God put forth his power and David was delivered from Goliath, the
giant; the mouths of the lions were closed and Daniel escaped unhurt; the three
Hebrew children were cast into the burning fiery furnace and came forth
unharmed and unscorched. But God's power
did not always interpose for the deliverance of his people, for we read: "And
others had trial of cruel mockings and scourgings, yea, moreover of, bonds
and imprisonment: they were stoned, they were sawn asunder, were tempted, were
slain with the sword; they wandered about in sheepskins and goatskins; being
destitute, afflicted, tormented" (#Heb 11:36,37). But why?
Why were not these men of faith delivered like the others? Or, why were not the
others suffered to be killed like these? Why should God's power interpose and
rescue some and not the others? Why allow Stephen to be stoned to death, and
then deliver Peter from prison?
God is sovereign in the delegation
of his power to others. Why did God endow Methuselah with a vitality which enabled
him to outlive all his contemporaries? Why did God impart to Samson a physical
strength which no other human has ever possessed? Again; it is written,
"But thou shalt remember the Lord thy God: for it is he that giveth thee power to get wealth" (#De 8:18), but God
does not bestow this power on all alike. Why not? Why has he given such power
to men like Morgan, Carnegie, Rockefeller? The answer to all of these
questions, is, because God is Sovereign, and being Sovereign he does as he
pleases.
God is sovereign in the
exercise of his mercy. Necessarily so, for mercy is directed by the will of him that shows mercy. Mercy is
not a right to which man is
entitled. Mercy is that adorable
attribute of God by which he pities and relieves the wretched. But under the
righteous government of God no one is wretched who does not deserve to be so. The objects of mercy,
then, are those who are miserable, and all misery is the result of sin, hence the miserable are deserving
of punishment not mercy. To speak of deserving
mercy is a contradiction of terms.
God bestows his mercies on whom he pleases and withholds them as
seemeth good unto himself. A remarkable illustration of this fact is seen in
the manner that God responded to the prayers of two men offered under very
similar circumstances. Sentence of death was passed upon Moses for one act of
disobedience, and he besought the Lord for a reprieve. But was his desire
gratified? No; he told Israel, "The Lord is wroth with me for your sakes, and would not hear me: and the Lord said
unto me, Let it suffice thee" (#De 3:26). Now mark
the second case:--"In those days was Hezekiah sick unto death. And the
prophet Isaiah the son of Amoz came to him, and said unto him, `Thus saith the
Lord, Set thine house in order; for thou shalt die, and not live'. Then he
turned his face to the wall, and prayed unto the Lord, saying, `I beseech thee,
O Lord, remember now how I have walked before thee in truth and with a perfect
heart, and have done that which is good in thy sight'. And Hezekiah wept sore.
And it came to pass, before Isaiah was gone out into the middle court, that the
word of the Lord came to him, saying, `Turn again, and tell Hezekiah the
captain of my people, thus saith the Lord, the God of David thy father, I have heard thy prayer, I have seen thy
tears: behold, I will heal thee: on the third day thou shalt go up unto the
house of the Lord. And I will add unto thy days fifteen years'" (#2Ki 20:1-6). Both of
these men had the sentence of death in themselves, and both prayed earnestly
unto the Lord for a reprieve: the one wrote: "The Lord would not hear
me", and died; but to the other it was said, "I have heard thy
prayer", and his life was spared. What an illustration and exemplification
of the truth expressed in #Ro 9:15!--"For he saith to Moses, I
will have mercy on whom I will have mercy, and I will have
compassion on whom I will have compassion."
The sovereign exercise of God's mercy--pity
shown to the wretched--was displayed when Jehovah became flesh and tabernacled
among men. Take one illustration. During one of the Feasts of the Jews, the
Lord Jesus went up to Jerusalem. He came to the Pool of Bethesda, where lay "a great multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, waiting for
the moving of the water." Among this "great multitude" there was
"a certain man which had an infirmity thirty and eight years." What
happened? "When Jesus saw him
lie, and knew that he had been now a long time in that case, he saith unto him, Wilt thou be made whole? The
impotent man answered him, Sir, I have no man, when the water is troubled, to
put me into the pool: but while I am
coming, another steppeth down before me. Jesus saith unto him, Rise, take up
thy bed, and walk. And immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed,
and walked" (#Joh 5:3-9). Why was this one man singled out from all the
others? We are not told that he cried
"Lord, have mercy on me."
There is not a word in the narrative which intimates that this man possessed
any qualifications which entitled him to receive special favour. Here then was
a case of the sovereign exercise of Divine mercy, for it was just as easy for
Christ to heal the whole of that "great multitude" as this one
"certain man." But he did not. He put forth his power and relieved
the wretchedness of this one particular sufferer, and for some reason known
only to himself, he declined to do the same for the others. Again, we say, what an illustration and
exemplification of (#Ro 9:15)!--"I will have mercy on whom I will have mercy, and
I will have compassion on whom I will have compassion."
God is sovereign in the
exercise of his love. Ah! that is a hard saying, who then can receive it?
It is written, "A man can receive nothing, except it be given him from
heaven" (#Joh 3:27). When we say that God is
sovereign in the exercise of his love, we mean that he loves whom he
chooses. God does not love everybody
{b}; if he did, he would love the Devil.
Why does not God love the Devil?
Because there is nothing in him to
love; because there is nothing in him to attract the heart of God. Nor is there anything to attract God's love in any of the fallen
sons of Adam, for all of them are, by
nature, "children of wrath"
(#Eph
2:3). If then there is nothing in any member of the human race to
attract God's love, and if, notwithstanding, he does love some, then it
necessarily follows that the cause of
his love must be found in himself, which is only, another way of saying that
the exercise of God's love towards the fallen sons of men is according to his
own good pleasure. {c}
In the final analysis, the exercise of God's love must be traced back to his sovereignty,
or, otherwise, he would love by rule;
and if he loved by rule, then is he under a
law of love, and if he is under law
of love then is he not supreme, but is himself ruled by law. "But", it may be asked, "Surely you do
not deny that God loves the entire
human family?" We reply, it is written, "Jacob have I loved, but Esau
have I hated" (#Rom 9:13). If then God loved Jacob and hated Esau, and that before they
were born or had done either good or evil, then the reason for his love was not in them, but in himself.
That the exercise of God's love is according to his own sovereign pleasure is also clear from the
language of (#Eph 1:3-5), where we read, "Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord
Jesus Christ, who hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly
places in Christ: According as he hath chosen us in him before the foundation
of the world, that we should be holy and without blame before him. In love having predestinated us unto the adoption of children by Jesus
Christ to himself according to the good
pleasure of his will." It was "in
love" that God the Father
predestined his chosen ones unto the adoption of children by Jesus Christ to
himself, "according"--according to what? According to some excellency he discovered in
them? No. What then? According to what he foresaw they would become?
No; mark carefully the inspired answer--"According to the good
pleasure of his will."
God is sovereign in the
exercise of his grace. This of necessity, for grace is favour shown to the undeserving, yea, to the Hell deserving.
Grace is the antithesis of justice. Justice demands the impartial enforcement
of law. Justice requires that each shall receive his legitimate due, neither
more nor less. Justice bestows no favours and is no respecter of persons.
Justice, as such, shows no pity and knows no mercy. But after justice has been
fully satisfied, grace flows forth. Divine grace is not exercised at the
expense of justice, but "grace reigns through righteousness" (#Ro 5:21), and if
grace reigns, then is grace
sovereign.
Grace has been defined as the unmerited favour of God; {d} and if
unmerited, then none can claim it as their inalienable right. If grace is unearned and undeserved, then none are entitled to it. If grace is a gift, then
none can demand it. Therefore, as
salvation is by grace, the free gift of God, then he bestows it on whom he
pleases. Because salvation is by grace,
the very chief of sinners is not beyond the reach of Divine mercy. Because
salvation is by grace, boasting is excluded and God gets all the glory.
The sovereign exercise of grace is illustrated on nearly every
page of Scripture. The Gentiles are left to walk in their own ways, while
Israel becomes the covenant people of Jehovah.
Ishmael the firstborn is cast out comparatively not blessed, while Isaac
the son of his parents' old age is made the child of promise. Esau the generous
hearted and forgiving spirited is denied the blessing, though he sought it
carefully with tears, while the worm Jacob receives the inheritance and is
fashioned into a vessel of honour. So
in the New Testament, Divine truth is hidden from the wise and prudent, but is
revealed to babes. The Pharisees and Sadducees are left to go their own way,
while publicans and harlots are drawn by the cords of love.
In a remarkable manner Divine grace was exercised at the time of
the Saviour's birth. The incarnation of God's Son was one of the greatest
events in the history of the universe, and yet its actual occurrence was not
made known to all mankind; instead, it was specially revealed to the Bethlehem
shepherds and wise men of the east. And this was prophetic and indicative of
the entire course of this dispensation, for even today Christ is not made known
to all. It would have been an easy matter for God to have sent a company of
angels to every nation and announced
the birth of his Son. But he did
not. God could have readily attracted
the attention of all mankind to the "star"; but he did not. Why?
Because God is sovereign and dispenses his favours as he pleases. Note
particularly the two classes to whom the birth of the Saviour was made known, namely, the most unlikely classes--illiterate shepherds
and heathen from a far country. No
angel stood before the Sanhedrin and announced the advent of Israel's Messiah!
No "star" appeared unto the scribes and lawyers as they, in their
pride and self-righteousness, searched the Scriptures! They searched diligently to find out where
he should be born, and yet it was not made known to them when he was actually come.
What a display of Divine sovereignty--the illiterate shepherds singled
out for peculiar honour, and the learned and eminent passed by! And why was the
birth of the Saviour revealed to these foreigners, and not to those in whose
midst he was born? See in this a wonderful foreshadowing of God's dealings with
our race throughout the entire Christian dispensation--sovereign in the
exercise of his grace, bestowing his favours on whom he pleases, often on the
most unlikely and unworthy. {e}
{a} Some years ago an
evangelical preacher of nation-wide reputation visited the town in which we
then were, and during the course of his address kept repeating, "Poor God!
Poor God!" Surely it is this "preacher" who needs to be pitied.
{b} (#Joh 3:16) will be
examined in topic 1414.
{c} We are not unmindful
of the fact that men have invented the distinction between God's love of complacency and his love of compassion, but this is an invention pure and simple. Scripture forms the latter God's pity
(see #Mt 18:33), and he is kind unto
the unthankful and the evil (#Lu 6:35)!
{d} An esteemed friend who
kindly read through this book in its manuscript form, and to whom we are
indebted for a number of excellent suggestions, has pointed out that, grace is
something more than "merited favour." To feed a tramp who calls on me
is "unmerited favour", but it is scarcely grace. But suppose that after robbing
me I should feed this starving tramp--that
would be Grace, then, is favour shown where there is positive de-merit in one receiving it.
{e} It has been pointed
out to us that God's sovereignty was signally displayed in his choice of the place where his Son was born. Not to
Greece or Italy did the Lord of Glory come, but to the insignifieant land of
Palestine! Not in Jerusalem--the royal
city--was Immanuel born, but in Bethlehem, which was "little among the thousands (of towns and villages) in
Judah" (#Mic 5:2)! And it was in despised Nazareth
that he grew up!! Truly, God's ways are not ours.
Chapter 2 -- The Sovereignty Of God
In Creation
"Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive glory, and honour, and
power: for thou hast created all things, and
for thy pleasure they are and were created"
(#Re
4:11).
Having shown that sovereignty characterises the whole Being of
God, let us now observe how it marks all his ways and dealings.
In the great expanse of eternity, which stretches behind #Ge 1:1, the
universe was unborn and creation existed only in the mind of the great Creator.
In his sovereign majesty God dwelt all alone. We refer to that far distant
period before the heavens and the earth were created. There were then no angels
to hymn God's praises, no creatures to occupy his notice, no rebels to be
brought into subjection. The great God was all alone amid the awful silence of
his own vast universe. But even at that time, if time it could be called, God
was sovereign. He might create or not create according to his own good pleasure.
He might create this way or that way; He might create one world or one million
worlds, and who was there to resist his will? He might call into existence a
million different creatures and place them on absolute equality, endowing them with the same faculties and
placing them in the same environment; or, he might create a million creatures
each differing from others, and
possessing nothing in common save their creaturehood, and who was there to
challenge his right? If he so pleased, he might call into existence a world so
immense that its dimensions were utterly beyond finite computation; and were he
so disposed, he might create an organism so small that nothing but the most
powerful microscope could reveal its existence to human eyes. It was his
sovereign right to create, on the one hand, the exalted seraphim to burn around
his throne, and on the other hand, the tiny insect which dies the same hour
that it is born. If the mighty God chose to have one vast gradation in his universe, from loftiest seraph to
creeping reptile, from revolving worlds to floating atoms, from macrocosm to
microcosm, instead of making everything
uniform, who was there to question his sovereign pleasure?
Behold then the exercise of Divine sovereignty long before man
ever saw the light. With whom took God counsel in the creation and disposition
of his creatures. See the birds as they fly through the air, the beasts as they
roam the earth, the fishes as they swim in the sea, and then ask, Who was it
that made them to differ? Was it not their Creator who sovereignly assigned their various locations and adaptations to
them!
Turn your eye to the heavens
and observe the mysteries of Divine sovereignty which there confront the
thoughtful beholder: "There is one glory of the sun, and another glory of
the moon, and another glory of the stars: for one star differeth from another star in glory" (#1Co 15:41). But why
should they? Why should the sun be more glorious than all the other planets?
Why should there be stars of the first magnitude and others of the tenth? Why
such amazing inequalities? Why should
some of the heavenly bodies be more
favourably placed than others in their relation to the sun? And why should
there be "shooting stars", falling stars, "wandering stars"
(#Jude
13), in a word, ruined
stars? And the only possible answer is, "For thy pleasure they are and
were created" (#Re 4:11).
Come now to our own planet.
Why should two thirds of its surface be covered with water, and why should so
much of its remaining third be unfit for human cultivation or habitation? Why
should there be vast stretches of marshes, deserts and ice fields? Why should
one country be so inferior, topographically, from another? Why should one be
fertile, and another almost barren? Why should one be rich in minerals and
another own none? Why should the climate of one be congenial and healthy, and
another uncongenial and unhealthy? Why should one abound in rivers and lakes,
and another be almost devoid of them? Why should one be constantly troubled
with earthquakes, and another be almost entirely free from them? Why? Because
thus it pleased the Creator and Upholder of all things.
Look at the animal kingdom
and note the wondrous variety. What comparison is possible between the lion and
the lamb, the bear and the kid, the elephant and the mouse? Some, like the
horse and the dog, are gifted with great intelligence; while others, like sheep
and swine, are almost devoid of it. Why? Some are designed to be beasts of
burden, while others enjoy a life of freedom. But why should the mule and the
donkey be shackled to a life of drudgery, while the lion and tiger are allowed
to roam the jungle at their pleasure? Some are fit for food, others unfit; some
are beautiful, others ugly; some are endowed with great strength, others are
quite helpless; some are fleet of foot, others can scarcely crawl--contrast the
hare and the tortoise; some are of use to man, others appear to be quite
valueless; some live for centuries, others a few months at most; some are tame,
others fierce. But why all these variations and differences?
What is true of the animals is equally true of the birds and
fishes. But consider now the vegetable
kingdom. Why should roses have thorns, and lilies grow without them? Why
should one flower emit a fragrant aroma and another have none? Why should one
tree bear fruit which is wholesome and another that which is poisonous? Why
should one vegetable be capable of enduring frost and another wither under it?
Why should one apple tree be loaded with fruit and another tree of the same age
and in the same orchard be almost barren? Why should one plant flower a dozen
times in a year and another bear blossoms but once a century? Truly, "whatsoever the Lord pleased, that
did he in heaven, and in the earth, in the seas, and all deep places" (#Ps 135:6).
Consider the angelic hosts.
Surely we shall find uniformity here. But no; there, as elsewhere, the same
sovereign pleasure of the Creator is displayed. Some are higher in rank than
others; some are more powerful than others; some are nearer to God than others.
Scripture reveals a definite and well defined gradation in the angelic orders.
From archangel, past seraphim and cherubim, we come to "principalities and
powers" (#Eph 3:10), and "from principalities and powers to rulers" (#Eph 6:12), and then
to the angels themselves, and even among them we read of "the elect angels" (#1Ti 5:21). Again we
ask, Why this inequality, this
difference in rank and order? And all we can say is "Our God is in the heavens,
he hath done whatsoever he hath pleased" (#Ps 115:3).
If then we see the sovereignty of God displayed throughout all
creation why should it be thought a strange thing if we behold it operating in
the midst of the human family? Why
should it be thought strange if to one God is pleased to give five talents and
to another only one? Why should it be thought strange if one is born with a
robust constitution and another of the same parents is frail and sickly? Why
should it be thought strange if Abel is cut off in his prime, while Cain is
suffered to live on for many years? Why should it be thought strange that some
should be born black and others white; some be born idiots and others with high
intellectual endowments; some be born constitutionally lethargic and others
full of energy; some be born with a temperament that is selfish, fiery,
egotistical, others who are naturally self-sacrificing, submissive and meek?
Why should it be thought strange if some are qualified by nature to lead and
rule, while others are only fitted to follow and serve? Heredity and
environment cannot account for all these variations and inequalities. No; it is
God who maketh one to differ from
another. Why should he? "Even so, Father, for so it seemed good in thy
sight" must be our reply.
Learn then this basic truth, that the Creator is absolute
Sovereign, executing his own will, performing his own pleasure, and considering
nought but his own glory. "The Lord
hath made all things FOR HIMSELF" (#Pr 16:4). And had
he not a perfect right to? Since God is God, who dare challenge his
prerogative? To murmur against him is rank rebellion. To question his ways is
to impugn his wisdom. To criticise him is sin of the deepest dye. Have we
forgotten who he is? Behold,
"All nations before him are as nothing; and they are counted to him less
than nothing, and vanity. To whom then will ye liken God?" (#Isa
40:17,18).
Chapter 3 -- The Sovereignty Of God
In Administration
"The Lord hath prepared his throne in the heavens; and his kingdom ruleth over all" (#Ps 103:19).
First, a word concerning the need
for God to govern the material world. Suppose the opposite for a
moment. For the sake of argument, let us say that God created the world,
designed and fixed certain laws (which men term "the laws of
Nature"), and that he then withdrew,
leaving the world to its fortune and the outworking of these laws. In such a
case, we should have a world over which there was no intelligent, presiding
Governor, a world controlled by nothing more than impersonal laws--a concept worthy of gross Materialism and blank
Atheism. But, I say, suppose it for a moment; and in the light of such a
supposition, weigh well the following question:--What guaranty have we that
some day ere long the world will not be destroyed? A very superficial
observation of "the laws of Nature" reveals the fact that they are not uniform in their working. The proof
of this is seen in the fact that no two seasons are alike. If then Nature's
laws are irregular in their operations, what guaranty have we against some
dreadful catastrophe striking our earth? "The wind bloweth where it listeth" (pleaseth), which
means that man can neither harness nor hinder it. Sometimes the wind blows with
great fury, and it might be that it should suddenly gather in volume and
velocity, until it became a hurricane world wide in its range. If there is
nothing more than the laws of Nature regulating the wind, then, perhaps
tomorrow, there may come a terrific tornado and sweep everything from the
surface of the earth! What assurance have we against such a calamity? Again; of
late years we have heard and read much about clouds bursting and flooding whole
districts, working fearful havoc in the destruction of both property and life.
Man is helpless before them, for science can devise no means to prevent clouds bursting. Then how do we
know that these bursting clouds will not be multiplied indefinitely and the
whole earth be deluged by their downpour? This would be nothing new: why should
not the flood of Noah's day be repeated? And what of earthquakes?
Every few years, some island or some great city is swept out of
existence by one of them--and what can man do? Where is the guaranty that ere
long a mammoth earthquake will not destroy the whole world? Science tells us of
great subterranean fires burning beneath the comparatively thin crust of our
earth, how do we know but what these fires will not suddenly burst forth and
consume our entire globe? Surely every reader now sees the point we are seeking
to make: Deny that God is governing
matter, deny that he is
"upholding all things by the word of his power" (#Heb 1:3), and all sense of security is gone!
Let us pursue a similar course of reasoning in connection with the human
race. Is God governing this world of ours? Is he shaping the destinies of
nations, controlling the course of empires, determining the limits of
dynasties? Has he prescribed the limits of evildoers, saying, "Thus far
shalt thou go and no further?" Let us suppose the opposite for a moment.
Let us assume that God has delivered over the helm into the hand of his
creatures, and see where such a supposition leads us. For the sake of argument
we will say that every man enters this world endowed with a will that is
absolutely free, and that it is impossible
to compel or even coerce him without destroying
his freedom. Let us say that every man possesses a knowledge of right and
wrong, that he has the power to choose between them, and that he is left
entirely free to make his own choice and go his own way. Then what? Then it
follows that man is sovereign, for he
does as he pleases and is the
architect of his own fortune. But in such a case we can have no assurance that
ere long every man will reject the good and choose the evil. In such a case we
have no guaranty against the entire human race committing moral suicide. Let
all Divine restraints be removed and man be left absolutely free, and all
ethical distinctions would immediately disappear, the spirit of barbarism would
prevail universally, and pandemonium would reign supreme. Why not? If one
nation deposes its rulers and repudiates its constitution, what is there to
prevent all nations from doing the same? If little more than a century ago the
streets of Paris ran with the blood of rioters, what assurance have we that
before the present century closes every city throughout the world will not
witness a similar sight? What is there to hinder world wide lawlessness and
universal anarchy? Thus we have sought to show the need, the imperative need, for God to occupy the throne, take the
government upon his shoulder, and
control the activities and destinies of his creatures.
But has the man of faith any difficulty in perceiving the
government of God over this world? Does not the anointed eye discern, even amid
much seeming confusion and chaos, the hand of the Most High controlling and shaping
the affairs of men, even in the common concerns of every day life? Take for
example farmers and their crops.
Suppose God left them to themselves: what would then prevent them, one and all,
from grassing their arable lands and devoting themselves exclusively to the
rearing of cattle and dairying? In such a case there would be a world famine of
wheat and corn! Take the work of the post office. Suppose that everybody
decided to write letters on Mondays only, could the authorities cope with the
mail on Tuesdays? and how would they occupy their time the balance of the week?
So again with storekeepers. What would happen if every housewife did her
shopping on Wednesday, and stayed at home the rest of the week? But instead of
such things happening, farmers in different countries both raise sufficient
cattle and grow enough grain of various kinds to supply the almost incalculable
needs of the human race; the mails are almost evenly distributed over the six
days of the week; and some women shop on Monday, some on Tuesday, and so on. Do
not these things clearly evidence the overruling and controlling hand of God!
Having shown, in brief, the imperative need for God to reign over
our world, let us now observe still further the fact that God does rule,
actually rule, and that his government extends to and is exercised over all
things and all creatures. And,
1. God Governs
Inanimate Matter.
That God governs inanimate matter, that inanimate matter performs
his bidding and fulfils his decrees, is clearly shown on the very frontispiece
of Divine revelation. God said, Let there be light, and we read, "There was light." God said,
"Let the waters under the heaven be gathered together unto one place, and
let the dry land appear", and "it
was so." And again, "God
said, Let the earth bring forth grass, the herb yielding seed, and the fruit
tree yielding fruit after his kind, whose seed is in itself, upon the earth: and it was so." As the Psalmist
declares, "he spake, and it was done; he commanded, and it stood
fast."
What is stated in Genesis one is afterwards illustrated all
through the Bible. After the creation of Adam, sixteen centuries went by before
ever a shower of rain fell upon the earth, for before Noah "there went up
a mist from the earth, and watered the whole face of the ground" (#Ge 2:6). But, when
the iniquities of the antediluvians had come to the full, then God said,
"And, behold, I, even I, do bring a
flood of waters upon the earth,
to destroy all flesh, wherein is the breath of life, from under heaven; and
everything that is in the earth shall die"; and in fulfilment of this we
read, "In the six hundredth year of Noah's life, in the second month, the
seventeenth day of the month, the same day were all the fountains of the great
deep broken up, and the windows of heaven were opened. And the rain was upon
the earth forty days and forty nights" (#Ge 6:17 7:11,12).
Witness God's absolute (and sovereign) control of inanimate matter in connection with the
plagues upon Egypt. At his bidding the light was turned into darkness and
rivers into blood; hail fell, and death came down upon the godless land of the
Nile, until even its haughty monarch was compelled to cry out for deliverance.
Note particularly how the inspired record here emphasises God's absolute
control over the elements--"And Moses stretched forth his rod toward
heaven: and the Lord sent thunder and hail, and the fire ran along upon the ground;
and the Lord rained hail upon the
land of Egypt. So there was hail, and fire mingled with the hail, very
grievous, such as there was none like it in all the land of Egypt since it
became a nation. And the hail smote throughout all the land of Egypt all that
was in the field, both man and beast; and the hail smote every herb of the
field, and brake every tree of the field. Only
in the land of Goshen, where the children of Israel were, was there no hail" (#Ex
9:23-26). The same distinction was observed in
connection with the ninth plague: "And the Lord said unto Moses, Stretch
out thine hand toward heaven, that there may be darkness over the land of
Egypt, even darkness which may be felt. And Moses stretched forth his hand
toward heaven; and there was a thick darkness in all the land of Egypt three
days: They saw not one another, neither rose any from his place for three days:
but all the children of Israel had light in their dwellings"
(#Ex 10:21-23).
The above examples are by no means isolated cases. At God's decree fire and brimstone descended from
heaven and the cities of the plain were destroyed, and a fertile valley was
converted into a loathsome sea of death. At his bidding the waters of the Red
Sea parted asunder so that the Israelites passed over dry shod, and at his word
they rolled back again and destroyed the Egyptians who were pursuing them. A
word from him, and the earth opened her mouth and Korah and his rebellious
company were swallowed up. The furnace of Nebuchadnezzar was heated seven times
beyond its normal temperature, and into it three of God's children were cast,
but the fire did not so much as scorch their clothes, though it slew the men
who cast them into it.
What a demonstration of the Creator's governmental control over
the elements was furnished when he became flesh and tabernacled among men!
Behold him asleep in the boat. A storm arises. The winds roar and the waves are
lashed into fury. The disciples who are with him, fearful test their little
craft should founder, awake their Master, saying, "Carest thou not that we
perish?" And then we read, "And he arose, and rebuked the wind, and
said unto the sea, Peace, be still. And
the wind ceased, and there was a
great calm" (#Mr 4:39). Mark again, the sea, at the will of its Creator, bore him up
upon its waves. At a word from him the fig tree withered; at his touch disease
fled instantly.
The heavenly bodies are also ruled by their Maker and perform his
sovereign pleasure. Take two illustrations. At God's bidding the sun went back
ten degrees on the dial of Ahaz to help the weak faith of Hezekiah. In New
Testament times, God caused a star to herald the incarnation of his Son--the
star which appeared unto the wise men of the East. This star, we are told, "went before them till it came and
stood over where the young child was" (#Mt 2:9).
What a declaration is this--"he sendeth forth his commandment
upon earth: his word runneth very swiftly. he
giveth snow like wool: he scattereth the hoar frost like ashes. he casteth forth his ice like morsels:
who can stand before his cold? He sendeth
out his word, and melteth them: he
causeth his wind to blow, and the waters flow" (#Ps
147:15-18). The mutations of the elements are beneath God's sovereign
control. It is God who withholds the
rain, and it is God who gives the
rain when he wills, where he wills, as he wills, and on whom he wills. Weather
Bureaus may attempt to give forecasts of the weather, but how frequently God
mocks their calculations! Sun "spots", the varying activities of the
planets, the appearing and disappearing of comets (to which abnormal weather is
sometimes attributed), atmospheric disturbances, are merely secondary causes,
for behind them all is God himself. Let his Word speak once more: "And
also I have withholden the rain from you, when there were yet three
months to the harvest: and I caused it to rain upon one city, and
caused it not to rain upon another city: one piece was rained upon, and the
piece whereon it rained not withered. So two or three cities wandered unto one
city, to drink water; but they were not satisfied: yet have ye not returned
unto me, saith the Lord. I have smitten
you with blasting and mildew: when your gardens and your vineyards and your
fig trees and your olive trees increased, the palmerworm devoured them: yet
have ye not returned unto me, saith the Lord. I have sent among you the pestilence after the manner of Egypt:
your young men have I slain with the sword, and have taken away your horses;
and I have made the stink of your camps to come up into your nostrils: yet have
ye not returned unto me, saith the Lord" (#Am 4:7-10).
Truly, then, God governs inanimate matter. Earth and air, fire and
water, hail and snow, stormy winds and angry seas, all perform the word of his
power and fulfil his sovereign pleasure. Therefore, when we complain about the
weather, we are, in reality, murmuring against God.
2. God Governs Irrational Creatures.
What a striking illustration of God's government over the animal
kingdom is found in #Ge 2:19! "And out of the ground the Lord God formed every beast of
the field, and every fowl of the air; and
brought them unto Adam to see what he
would call them: and whatsoever Adam called every living creature, that was the
name thereof." Should it be said that this occurred in Eden, and took
place before the fall of Adam and the consequent curse which was inflicted on
every creature, then our next reference fully meets the objection: God's
control of the beasts was again openly displayed at the flood. Mark how God
caused to "come unto" Noah every specie of living creature "of
every living thing of all flesh, two of every sort shalt thou bring into the
ark, to keep them alive with thee; they shall be male and female. Of fowls
after their kind, of every creeping thing after his kind: two of every sort shall come unto thee" (#Ge 6:19,20)--all were
beneath God's sovereign control. The lion of the jungle, the elephant of the
forest, the bear of the polar regions; the ferocious panther, the untameable
wolf, the fierce tiger; the high soaring eagle and the creeping crocodile--see
them all in their native fierceness, and yet, quietly submitting to the will of
their Creator, and coming two by two into the ark!
We referred to the plagues sent upon Egypt as illustrating God's
control of inanimate matter, let us now turn to them again to see how they
demonstrate his perfect rulership over irrational creatures. At his word the
river brought forth frogs abundantly, and these frogs entered the palace of
Pharaoh and the houses of his servants and, contrary to their natural
instincts, they entered the beds, the ovens and the kneadingtroughs (#Ex 8:3). Swarms of
flies invaded the land of Egypt, but there were no flies in the land of Goshen!
(#Ex
8:22). Next, the cattle were stricken and we read, "Behold, the hand of the Lord is upon thy cattle
which is in the field, upon the horses, upon the asses, upon the camels, upon
the oxen, and upon the sheep: there shall be a very grievous murrain. And the
Lord shall sever between the cattle of Israel and the cattle of Egypt: and there
shall nothing die of all that is the children's of Israel. And the Lord
appointed a set time, saying, Tomorrow the Lord shall do this thing in the
land. And the Lord did that thing on the morrow, and all the cattle of Egypt
died: but of the cattle of the children of Israel
died not one" (#Ex 9:3-6). In like manner God sent clouds of locusts to plague Pharaoh and
his land, appointing the time of their visitation, determining the course and
assigning the limits of their depredations.
Angels are not the only ones who do God's
bidding. The brute beasts equally perform his pleasure. The sacred ark, the ark
of the covenant, is in the country of the Philistines. How is it to be brought
back to its home land? Mark the servants of God's choice, and how completely
they were beneath his control: "And the Philistines called the priests and
the diviners saying, What shall we do the ark of the Lord? tell us wherewith we
shall send it his place. And they said ... Now therefore make a cart, and take
two milch kine, on which there hath no yoke, and tie the kine to the cart, and
bring their home from them: And take the ark of the Lord, and lay upon the
cart; and put the jewels of gold, which ye him for a trespass offering, in a
coffer by the side thereof, and send it away that it may go. And see, if it
goeth up the way of his own coast to Bethshemesh, then he hath done us this
great evil: but if not, then we shall know that it is not his hand that smote
us; it was a chance that happened to us." And what happened? How striking
the sequel "And the kine took the
straight way to the way of Bethshemesh,
and went along the highway, lowing as they went, and turned not aside to the
right hand or to the left" (#1Sa 6:1-12). Equally striking is the case of Elijah: "And the
word of the Lord came unto him, saying, Get thee hence, and hide thyself by the
brook Cherith, that is before Jordan. And it shall be, that thou shalt drink of
the brook; and I have commanded the
ravens to feed thee there." (#1Ki
17:2-4). The natural instinct of these birds
of prey was held in subjection, and instead of consuming the food themselves,
they carried it to Jehovah's servant in his solitary retreat.
Is further proof required? then it is ready to hand. God makes a
dumb ass to rebuke the prophet's madness. He sends forth two she bears from the
woods to devour forty! and two of Elijah's tormentors. In fulfilment of his
word, he causes the dogs to lick up the blood of the wicked Jezebel. He seals
the mouths of Babylon's lions when Daniel is cast into the den, though, later,
he causes them to devour the prophet's accusers. He prepares a great fish to
swallow the disobedient Jonah and then, when his ordained hour struck,
compelled it to vomit him forth on dry
land. At his bidding a fish carries a coin to Peter for tribute money, and
in order to fulfil his word he makes the cock to crow twice after Peter's
denial. Thus we see that God reigns over irrational creatures: beasts of the
field, birds of the air, fishes of the sea, all perform his sovereign bidding.
3. God Governs The Children Of Men.
We fully appreciate the fact that this is the most difficult part
of our subject, and, accordingly, it will be dealt with at greater length in
the pages that follow; but at present we consider the fact of God's government over men in general, before we attempt to
deal with the problem in detail.
Two alternatives confront us, and between them we are obliged to
choose: either God governs, or he is governed; either God rules, or he is
ruled; either God has his way, or men have theirs. And is our choice between
these alternatives hard to make? Shall we say that in man we behold a creature
so unruly that he is beyond God's
control? Shall we say that sin has alienated
the sinner so far from the thrice Holy One that he is outside the pale of his jurisdiction? Or, shall we say that man has
been endowed with moral responsibility, and therefore God must leave him
entirely free, at least during the period of his probation? Does it necessarily
follow because the natural man is an outlaw against heaven, a rebel against the
Divine government, that God is unable to fulfil his purpose through him? We
mean, not merely that he may overrule
the effects of the actions of evildoers, nor that he will yet bring the wicked
to stand before his judgment bar so that sentence of punishment may be passed
upon them--multitudes of non-Christians believe these things--but, we mean,
that every action of the most lawless of his subjects is entirely beneath his
control, yea that the actor is, though unknown to himself, carrying out the
secret decrees of the Most High. Was it not thus with Judas? and is it possible
to select a more extreme case? If then the arch rebel was performing the
counsel of God is it any greater tax upon our faith to believe the same of all
rebels?
Our present object is not philosophic inquiry nor metaphysical
casuistry, but to ascertain the teaching of Scripture upon this profound theme.
To the Law and the Testimony, for there only can we learn of the Divine
government --its character, its design, its modus operandi, its scope. What
then has it pleased God to reveal to us in his blessed Word concerning his rule
over the works of his hands, and particularly, over the one who originally was
made in his own image and likeness?
"In him we live, and
move, and have our being" (#Ac 17:28). What a
sweeping assertion is this! These words, be it noted, were addressed, not to
one of the churches God, not to a company of saints who had reached an exalted
plane of spirituality, but to a heathen audience, to those who worshipped
"the unknown God" and who "mocked" when they heard of the
resurrection of the dead. And yet, to the Athenian philosophers, to the
Epicureans and Stoics, the apostle Paul did not hesitate to affirm that they
lived and moved and had their being in God, which signified not only that they
owed their existence and preservation to the one who made the world and all
things therein, but also that their very actions were encompassed and therefore
controlled by the Lord of heaven and earth. Compare #De 5:23, last
clause!
"The disposings
(margin) of the heart, and the answer of the tongue is from the Lord" (#Pr 16:1). Mark that
the above declaration is of general application--it is of "man", not
simply of believers, that this is predicated. "A man's heart deviseth his
way: but the Lord directeth his steps" (#Pr 16:9). If the
Lord directs the steps of a man, is
it not proof that he is being controlled or governed by God? Again; "There
are many devices in a man's heart; nevertheless
the counsel of the Lord, that shall
stand" (#Pr 19:21). Can this mean anything less than, that no matter what man may
desire and plan, it is the will of his Maker which is executed? As an
illustration take the "Rich Fool" the "devices" of his
heart are made known to us--"And he thought within himself, saying, `What
shall I do, because I have no room where to bestow my fruits?' And he said,
`This will I do: I will pull down my
barns, and build greater; and there I
will bestow all my fruits and my goods. And I will say to my soul, Soul, thou hast much goods laid up for many
years; take thine ease, eat, drink, and be merry.'" Such were the
"devices" of his heart,
nevertheless it was "the counsel of the Lord" that stood. The "I
will's" of the rich man came to nought, for "God said unto him, thou fool, this night shall thy soul be
required of thee" (#Lu 12:20).
"The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, as the rivers
of water: he turneth it whithersoever he
will" (#Pr 21:1). What could be more explicit? Out of the heart are "the
issues of life" (#Pr 4:23), for as a man "thinketh in
his heart, so is he" (#Pr 23:7). If then the heart is in the hand
of the Lord, and if "he turneth it whithersoever he will", then is it
not clear that men, yea, governors and rulers, and so all men, are completely beneath the governmental control of the
Almighty!
No
limitations must be placed upon the above declarations. To insist that some men, at least, do thwart God's will and overturn his counsels, is to repudiate
other scriptures equally explicit. Weigh well the following: "But he is in
one mind, and who can turn him? and what his soul desireth, even that he doeth" (#Job 23:13). "The
counsel of the Lord standeth for ever,
the thoughts of his heart to all generations" (#Ps 33:11). "There is
no wisdom nor understanding nor counsel against the Lord" (#Pr 21:30). "For the
Lord of hosts hath purposed, and who
shall disannul it? And his hand is stretched out, and who shall turn it
back?" (#Isa 14:27). "Remember the former things of old: for I am God,
and there is none else! I am God, and there is none like me, declaring the end
from the beginning, and from ancient times the things that are not yet done,
saying, my counsel shall stand, and I
will do all my pleasure" (#Isa 46:9,10). There is no
ambiguity in these passages. They affirm in the most unequivocal and unqualified terms that it is impossible to
bring to naught the purpose of Jehovah.
We read the Scriptures in
vain if we fail to discover that the actions of men, evil men as well as good,
are governed by the Lord God. Nimrod and his fellows determined to erect the
tower of Babel, but ere their task was accomplished God frustrated their plans.
God called Abraham alone (#Isa 51:2), but his kinsfolk accompanied him
as he left Ur of the Chaldees. Was then the will of the Lord defeated? Nay,
verily. Mark the sequel. Terah died
before Canaan was reached (#Ge 11:31), and though Lot accompanied his
uncle into the land of promise, he soon separated from him and settled down in
Sodom. Jacob was the child to whom the inheritance was promised, and though
Isaac sought to reverse Jehovah's decree and bestow the blessing upon Esau, his
efforts came to naught. Esau again swore vengeance upon Jacob, but when next
they met they wept for joy instead of fighting in hate. The brethren of Joseph
determined his destruction, but their evil counsels were overthrown. Pharaoh
refused to let Israel carry out the instructions of Jehovah and perished in the
Red Sea for his pains. Balak hired Balaam to curse the Israelites, but God compelled him to bless them. Haman
erected a gallows for Mordecai but was hanged upon it himself. Jonah resisted
the revealed will of God, but what became of his efforts?
Ah, the heathen may
"rage" and the people imagine a "vain thing"; the kings of
the earth may "set themselves", and the rulers take counsel together against the Lord and against his Christ,
saying, "Let us break Their bands asunder, and cast away Their cords from
us" (#Ps 2:1-3). But is the great God perturbed or disturbed by the rebellion of
his puny creatures? No, indeed: "he that sitteth in the heavens shall laugh: the Lord shall have them in derision" (#Ps 2:4). He is
infinitely exalted above all, and the greatest confederacies of earth's pawns,
and their most extensive and vigorous preparations to defeat his purpose are,
in his sight, altogether puerile. He
looks upon their puny efforts, not only without any alarm, but he
"laughs" at their folly; He treats their impotency with
"derision." He knows that he can crush them like moths when he
pleases, or consume them in a moment with the breath of his mouth. Ah, it is
but "a vain thing" for the
potsherds of the earth to strive with the glorious Majesty of Heaven. Such is
our God; worship ye him.
Mark, too, the sovereignty which God displayed in his
dealings with men! Moses who was slow of speech, and not Aaron his elder
brother who was not slow of speech, was the one chosen to be his ambassador in
demanding from Egypt's monarch the release of his oppressed people. Moses again,
though greatly beloved utters one hasty word and was excluded from Canaan;
whereas Elijah, passionately murmurs and suffers but a mild rebuke, and was
afterwards taken to heaven without seeing death! Uzzah merely touched the ark
and was instantly slain, whereas the Philistines carried it off in insulting
triumph and suffered no immediate harm. Displays of grace which would have
brought a doomed Sodom to repentance, failed to move an highly privileged
Capernaum. Mighty works which would have subdued Tyre and Sidon, left the
upbraided cities of Galilee under the curse of a rejected Gospel. If they would
have prevailed over the former, why were they not wrought there? If they proved
ineffectual to deliver the latter then why perform them? What exhibitions are
these of the sovereign will of the Most High!
4. God
Governs Angels: Both Good And Evil Angels.
The angels are God's
servants, his messengers, his chariots. They ever hearken to the word of his
mouth and do his commands. "And God sent
an angel unto Jerusalem to destroy it: and as he was destroying, the Lord
beheld, and he repented him of the evil, and said to the angel that destroyed,
It is enough, Stay now thine hand ... And the Lord commanded the angel; and he put his sword again into the
sheath thereof" (#1Ch 21:15,27). Many other scriptures might be cited to show
that the angels are in subjection to the will of their Creator and perform his
bidding--"And when Peter was come to himself, he said, Now I know of a
surety, that the Lord hath sent his
angel, and hath delivered me out of the hand of Herod" (#Ac 12:11). "And
the Lord God of the holy prophets sent
his angel to show unto his servants the things which must shortly be
done" (#Re 22:6). So it will be when our Lord returns: "The Son of Man shall
send forth his angels and they shall
gather out of his kingdom all things that offend, and them which do
iniquity" (#Mt 13:41). Again, we read, "he shall send his angels with a
great sound of a trumpet, and they shall gather together his elect from the
four winds, from one end of heaven to the other" (#Mt 24:31).
The same is true of evil spirits: they, too, fulfil God's
sovereign decrees. An evil spirit is sent by God to stir up rebellion in the
camp of Abimelech: "Then God sent an
evil spirit between Abimelech and the men of Shechem ... which aided him in
the killing of his brethren" (#Jud 9:23). Another
evil spirit he sent to be a lying spirit in the mouth of Ahab's
prophets--"Now therefore, behold, the
Lord hath put a lying spirit in the mouth of all these thy prophets, and
the Lord hath spoken evil concerning thee" (#1Ki 22:23). And yet
another was sent by the Lord to trouble Saul--"But the Spirit of the Lord
departed from Saul, and an evil spirit
from the Lord troubled him" (#1Sa 16:14). So, too,
in the New Testament: a whole legion of the demons go not out of their victim
until the Lord gave them permission
to enter the herd of swine.
It is clear from
Scripture, then, that the angels, good and evil, are under God's control, and
willingly or unwillingly carry out God's purpose. Yea, SATAN himself is absolutely subject to God's
control. When arraigned in Eden he listened to the awful sentence, but answered
not a word. He was unable to touch
Job until God granted him leave. So, too, he had to gain our Lord's consent
"before he could sift" Peter. When Christ commanded him to
depart--Get thee hence, Satan--we read, "Then
the Devil leaveth him" (#Mt 4:11). And, in the end, he will be cast
into the Lake of Fire, which has been prepared for him and his angels.
The Lord God omnipotent
reigneth. His government is exercised over inanimate matter, over the brute
beasts, over the children of men, over angels good and evil, and over Satan
himself. No revolving world, no shining of star, no storm, no creature moves,
no actions of men, no errands of angels, no deeds of Devil--nothing in all the vast universe can come to pass otherwise than God has
eternally purposed. Here is a foundation for faith. Here is a resting place
for the intellect. Here is an anchor for the soul, both sure and steadfast. It
is not blind fate, unbridled evil, man or Devil, but the Lord Almighty who is
ruling the world, ruling it according to his own good pleasure and for his own
eternal glory.
"Ten thousand ages ere the skies
Were into
motion brought;
All the long
years and worlds to come,
Stood present
to his thought:
There's not a
sparrow nor a worm,
But's found in
his decrees,
He raises
monarchs to their thrones
And sinks as
he may please".
Chapter 4 -- The Sovereignty Of God
In Salvation
"O the depths of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge
of God! How unsearchable are his judgments, and his ways past finding out"
(#Ro
11:33).
"Salvation is of the Lord" (#Jon 2:9); but the
Lord does not save all. Why not? He does
save some; then if he saves some, why not others? Is it because they are too
sinful and depraved? No; for the apostle wrote, "This is a faithful
saying, and worthy of all acceptation, that Christ Jesus came into the world to
save sinners; of whom I am chief"
(#1Ti
1:15). Therefore, if God saved the "chief" of sinners, none
are excluded because of their depravity. Why then does not God save all? Is it
because some are too stony hearted to be won? No; because of the most stony
hearted people of all it is written, that God will yet "take the stony
heart out of their flesh, and will give them a heart of flesh" (#Eze 11:19). Then is
it because some are so stubborn, so intractable, so defiant that God is unable to woo them to himself? Before we
answer this question let us ask another; let us appeal to the experience of the
Christian reader.
Friend; was there not a time when you walked in the counsel of the ungodly, stood in the way of
sinners, sat in the seat of the scorners, and with them said, "We will not have this man to reign
over us" (#Lu 19:14)? Was there not a time when you
"would not come to Christ that you might have life" (#Joh 5:40)? Yea, was
there not a time when you mingled your
voice with those who said unto God, "Depart from us; for we desire not the
knowledge of thy ways. What is the Almighty, that we should serve him? and what
profit should we have, if we pray unto him" (#Job
21:14,15)? With shamed face you have to acknowledge there was. But how is it that all is now changed? What was it that
brought you from haughty self-sufficiency to a humble suppliant, from one that
was at enmity with God to one that is at peace with him, from lawlessness to
subjection, from hate to love? And, as one born of the Spirit, you will readily
reply, "By the grace of God I am
what I am" (#1Co 15:10). Then do you not see that it is due to no lack of power in God,
nor to his refusal to coerce man, that other
rebels are not saved too? If God was able to subdue your will and win your
heart, and that without interfering
with your moral responsibility, then is he not able to do the same for others?
Assuredly he is. Then how inconsistent, how illogical, how foolish of you, in
seeking to account for the present course of the wicked and their ultimate
fate, to argue that God is unable to
save them, that they will not let him. Do you say, "But the time came
when I was willing, willing to receive
Christ as my Saviour?" True, but it was the Lord who made you
willing (#Ps 110:3 Php 2:13); why then does he not make all sinners willing? Why, but for the
fact that he is sovereign and does as he pleases! But to return to our opening
inquiry.
Why is it that all are not saved, particularly all who hear the
Gospel? Do you still answer, Because the majority refuse to believe? Well, that
is true, but it is only a part of the truth. It is the truth from the human side. But there is a divine side too, and this side of the
truth needs to be stressed or God will be robbed of his glory. The unsaved are
lost because they refuse to believe; the others are saved because they believe.
But why, do these others believe?
What is it that causes them to put their trust in Christ? Is it because they
are more intelligent than their fellows, and quicker to discern their need of salvation? Perish the thought--"Who maketh thee to differ from
another? And what hast thou that thou didst not receive? Now if thou didst
receive it, why dost thou glory, as if thou hadst not received it?" (#1Co 4:7). It is God
himself who maketh the difference between the elect and the non-elect, for of
his own it is written, "And we know that the Son of God is come, and hath given us an understanding, that
we may know him that is true" (#1Jo 5:20).
Faith is God's gift, and
"all men have not faith" (#2Th 3:2);
therefore, we see that God does not bestow this gift upon all. Upon whom then
does he bestow this saving favour? And we answer, upon his own elect--"As
many as were ordained to eternal life believed" (#Ac 13:48) hence it
is that we read of "the faith of God's elect" (#Tit 1:1). But is
God partial in the distribution of his favours? has he not the right to be?
Are there still some who "murmur against the good man of the house?"
Then his own words are sufficient reply--"Is it not lawful for me to do what I will with mine own?" (#Mt 20:15). God is
sovereign in the bestowment of his gifts, both in the natural and in the
spiritual realms. So much then for a general statement, and now to
particularize.
1. The Sovereignty Of God The Father In Salvation.
Perhaps the one scripture which most emphatically of all asserts
the absolute sovereignty of God in connection with his determining the destiny
of his creatures, is the ninth of Romans. We shall not attempt to review here
the entire chapter, but will confine ourselves to #Ro 9:21-23--"hath
not the potter power over the clay of the same lump, to make one vessel unto
honour, and another unto dishonour? What if God, willing to show his wrath, and
to make his power known, endured with much longsuffering the vessels of wrath
fitted to destruction: And that he might make known the riches of his glory on
the vessels of mercy, which he had afore prepared unto glory?" These
verses represent fallen mankind as inert and as impotent as a lump of lifeless
clay. This scripture evidences that there is "no difference", in
themselves, between the elect and the non-elect: they are clay of "the
same lump", which agrees with #Eph 2:3, where we
are told, that all are by nature "children of wrath." It
teaches us that the ultimate destiny of every individual is decided by the will
of God, and blessed it is that such be the case; if it were left to our wills, the ultimate destination of
us all would be the Lake of Fire. It declares that God himself does make a
difference in the respective destinations to which he assigns his creatures,
for one vessel is made "unto
honour and another unto
dishonour"; some are "vessels of wrath fitted to destruction",
others are "vessels of mercy, which he had afore prepared unto
glory."
We readily acknowledge that it is very humbling to the proud heart
of the creature to behold all mankind in the hand of God as the clay is in the
potter's hand, yet this is precisely how the Scriptures of Truth represent the
case. In this day of human boasting, intellectual pride, and deification of
man, it needs to be insisted upon that the potter forms his vessels for
himself. Let man strive with his Maker as he will, the fact remains that he is
nothing more than clay in the heavenly Potter's hands, and while we know that
God will deal justly with his creatures, that the Judge of all the earth will do right, nevertheless, he shapes
his vessels for his own purpose and according to his own pleasure. God claims
the indisputable right to do as he wills with his own.
Not only has God the right to do as he wills with the creatures of
his own hands, but he exercises this
right, and nowhere is that seen more plainly than in his predestinating
grace. Before the foundation of the world God made a choice, a selection, an
election. Before his omniscient eye stood the whole of Adam's race, and from it
he singled out a people and predestinated them "unto the adoption of
children", predestinated them "to be conformed to the image of his
Son", "ordained" them unto eternal life. Many are the scriptures
which set forth this blessed truth, seven of which will now engage our
attention.
"As many as were ordained to eternal life, believed" (#Ac 13:48). Every
artifice of human ingenuity has been employed to blunt the sharp edge of this
scripture and to explain away the obvious meaning of these words, but it has
been employed in vain, though nothing will ever be able to reconcile this and
similar passages to the mind of the natural man. "As many as were ordained
to eternal life, believed." Here we learn four things: First, that
believing is the consequence and not the
cause of God's decree. Second, that a
limited number only are "ordained to eternal life", for if all men
without exception were thus ordained by God, then the words "as many
as" are a meaningless qualification. Third, that this
"ordination" of God is not to mere external privileges but to
"eternal life", not to service but to salvation itself. Fourth, that
all--"as many as", not one less--who are thus ordained by God to
eternal life will most certainly believe.
The comments of the beloved Spurgeon on the above passage are well
worthy of our notice. Said he, "Attempts have been made to prove that
these words do not teach predestination, but these attempts so clearly do
violence to language that I shall not waste time in answering them. I read:
"As many as were ordained to eternal life believed", and I shall not
twist the text but shall glorify the grace of God by ascribing to that grace
the faith of every man. Is it not God who gives the disposition to believe? If
men are disposed to have eternal life, does not he--in every case--dispose
them? Is it wrong for God to give grace? If it be right for him to give it, is
it wrong for him to purpose to give
it? Would you have him give it by accident? If it is right for him to purpose
to give grace today, it was right for him to purpose it before today--and,
since he changes not--from eternity."
"Even so then at this present time also
there is a remnant according to the election of grace. And if by grace,
then it is no more of works: otherwise grace is no more grace. But if it be of
works, then is it no more grace: otherwise work is no more work" (#Ro 11:5,6). The words
"Even so" at the beginning of this quotation refer us to the previous
verse where we are told, "I have reserved to myself seven thousand men who
have not bowed the knee to Baal." Note particularly the word
"reserved." In the days of Elijah there were seven thousand--a small
minority--who were divinely preserved from idolatry and brought to the
knowledge of the true God. This preservation and illumination was not from
anything in themselves, but solely by God's special influence and agency. How
highly favoured such individuals were to be thus "reserved" by God!
Now says the apostle, Just as there was a "remnant" in Elijah's days
"reserved by God", even so there is in this present dispensation.
"A remnant according to the election of grace." Here the
cause of election is traced back to
its source. The basis upon which God elected this "remnant" was not
faith foreseen in them, because a choice founded upon the foresight of good
works is just as truly made on the ground of works as any choice can be, and in such a case, it would not be "of grace"; for, says the
apostle, "if by grace, then it is no more of works: otherwise grace is no
more grace"; which means that grace and works are opposites, they have
nothing in common, and will no more mingle than will oil and water. Thus the
idea of inherent good foreseen in those chosen, or of anything meritorious
performed by them, is rigidly excluded. "A remnant according to the
election of grace"; signifies an
unconditional choice resulting from the sovereign favour of God; in a word, it
is absolutely a gratuitous election.
"For ye see your calling, brethren, how that not many wise
men after the flesh, not many mighty, not many noble, are called: But God hath
chosen the foolish things of the world to confound the wise; and God hath
chosen the weak things of the world to confound the things which are mighty:
and base things of the world, and things which are despised, hath God chosen,
yea, and things which are not, to bring to nought things that are: That no
flesh should glory in his presence" (#1Co 1:26-29). Three
times over in this passage reference is made to God's choice, and choice necessarily supposes a selection, the
taking of some and the leaving of others. The chooser here is God himself, as
said the Lord Jesus to the apostles, "Ye have not chosen me, but I have
chosen you" (#Joh 15:16). The number chosen is strictly defined-- "not many wise men after the flesh, not many noble", etc., which agrees with #Mt 20:16, "So
the last shall be first, and the first last; for many be called, but few chosen." So much then for the fact
of God's choice; now mark the objects
of his choice. The ones spoken of above as chosen of God are "the weak
things of the world, base things of the world, and things which are
despised." But why? To demonstrate and magnify his grace. God's ways as well as his thoughts are utterly
at variance with man's. The carnal mind would have supposed that a selection
had been made from the ranks of the opulent and influential, the amiable and
cultured, so that Christianity might have won the approval and applause of the
world by its pageantry and fleshly glory. Ah! but "that which is highly
esteemed among men is abomination in the sight of God" (#Lu 16:15). God
chooses the base things. He did so in Old Testament times. The nation
which he singled out to be the depository of his holy oracles and the channel
through which the promised seed should come, was not the ancient Egyptians, the
imposing Babylonians, nor the highly civilized and cultured Greeks. No; that
people upon whom Jehovah set his love and regarded as "the apple of his
eye", were the despised, nomadic Hebrews. So it was when our Lord
tabernacled among men. The ones whom he took into favoured intimacy with
himself and commissioned to go forth as his ambassadors, were, for the most
part, unlettered fishermen. And so it has been ever since. So it is today: at
the present rates of increase, it will not be long before it is manifested that
the Lord has more in despised China who are really his, than he has in the
highly favoured United States of America; more among the uncivilized blacks of
Africa, than he has in cultured (?) Germany! And the purpose of God's choice,
the raison d'etre of the selection he
has made is, "that no flesh should glory in his presence" --there
being nothing whatever in the objects of his choice which should entitle them
to his special favours, then, all the praise will be freely ascribed to the exceeding
riches of his manifold grace.
"Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who
hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in the heavenlies in Christ: According as he hath chosen us in him before
the foundation of the world, that
we should be holy and without blame before him; In love having predestinated us
unto the adoption of children by Jesus Christ to himself, according to the good
pleasure of his will ... In whom also we have obtained an inheritance, being
predestinated according to the purpose of him who worketh all things after the
counsel of his own will" (#Eph 1:3-5,11). Here again we are told at what
point in time--if time it could be called--when God made choice of those who
were to be his children by Jesus Christ. It was not after Adam had fallen and
plunged his race into sin and wretchedness, but long ere Adam saw the light,
even before the world itself was founded, that God chose us in Christ. here
also we learn the purpose which God
had before him in connection with his own elect: it was that they "should
be holy and without blame before him"; it was "unto the adoption of
children"; it was that they should "obtain an inheritance". Here
also we discover the motive which
prompted him. It was "in love
that he predestinated us unto the adoption of children by Jesus Christ to
himself" --a statement which refutes the oft made and wicked charge that,
for God to decide the eternal destiny of his creatures before they are born, is
tyrannical and unjust. Finally, we are informed here, that in this matter he
took counsel with none, but that we are "predestinated according to the
good pleasure of his will."
"But we are bound to give thanks always to God for you,
brethren beloved of the Lord, because God
hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation
through sanctification the Spirit and belief of the truth" (#2Th 2:13). There are
three things here which deserve special attention. First, the fact that we are
expressly told that God's elect are "chosen to salvation." Language
could not be more explicit. How summarily do these words dispose of the
sophistries and equivocations of all who would make election refer nothing but
external privileges or rank in service! It is to "salvation" itself
that God hath chosen us. Second, we are warned here that election unto
salvation does not disregard the use of appropriate means: salvation is reached
through "sanctification of the Spirit and belief of the truth." It is
not true that because God has chosen a certain one to salvation that he will be
saved willy nilly, whether he believes or not: nowhere do the scriptures so
represent it. The same God who predestined the end, also appointed the means;
the same God who "chose unto salvation", decreed that his purpose
should, be realized through the work of the Spirit and belief of the truth.
Third, that God has chosen us unto salvation is a profound cause for fervent
praise. Note how strongly the apostle expresses this--"we are bound to give thanks always to God for you, brethren beloved of the Lord, because God hath from the beginning
chosen you to salvation", etc. Instead of shrinking in horror from the
doctrine of predestination, the believer, when he sees this blessed truth as it
is unfolded in the Word, discovers a ground for gratitude and thanksgiving such
as nothing else affords, save the unspeakable gift of the Redeemer himself.
"Who hath saved us, and called us with an holy calling, not
according to our works, but according, to his own purpose and grace, which was
given us in Christ Jesus before the world began" (#2Ti 1:9). How plain
and pointed is the language of Holy Writ! It is man who, by his words,
darkeneth counsel. It is impossible to state the case more clearly, or
strongly, than it is stated here. Our salvation is not "according to our works"; that is to say, it is
not due to anything in us, nor the rewarding of anything from us; instead, it
is the result of God's own "purpose and grace"; and this grace was
given us in Christ Jesus before the world began. It is by grace we are saved, and in the purpose of God this grace was
bestowed upon us not only before we saw the light, not only before Adam's fall,
but even before that far distant "beginning" of #Ge 1:1. And herein
lies the unassailable comfort of God's people. If his choice has been from
eternity it will last to eternity! "Nothing can survive to eternity but
what came from eternity, and what has
so come, will" (G.S. Bishop).
"Elect according to the foreknowledge of
God the Father, through sanctification of the Spirit, unto obedience and
sprinkling of the blood of Jesus Christ" (#1Pe
1:2). Here again election by the Father
precedes the work of the Holy Spirit in, and the obedience of faith by, those
who are saved; thus taking it entirely off creature ground, and resting it in
the sovereign pleasure of the Almighty. The "foreknowledge of God the
Father" does not here refer to his prescience of all things, but signifies
that the saints were all eternally present in Christ before the mind of God.
God did not "foreknow" that certain ones who heard the Gospel would
believe it apart from the fact that he
had "ordained" these certain
ones to eternal life. What God's prescience saw in all men was, love of sin
and hatred of himself. The "foreknowledge" of God is based upon his own decrees as is
clear from #Ac 2:23--"Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel and
foreknowledge of God, ye have taken, and by wicked hands have crucified and
slain"--note the order here: first God's "determinate counsel"
(his decree), and second his foreknowledge.
So it is again in #Ro 8:28,29, "For whom he did foreknow, he also did predestinate
to be conformed to the image of his Son", but the first word here, "for", looks back to the
preceding verse and the last clause of it reads, "to them who are the
called according to his purpose"--these are the ones whom he did
"foreknow and predestinate." Finally, it needs to be pointed out that
when we read in Scripture of God "knowing" certain people, the word
is used in the sense of knowing with approbation and love: "But if any man
love God, the same is known of
him" (#1Co 8:3). To the hypocrites Christ will yet say "I never knew
you"-- he never loved them. Elect according to the foreknowledge of God
the Father signifies, then, chosen by him as the special objects of his
approbation and love.
Summarizing the teaching of these seven passages we learn that,
God has "ordained to eternal life" certain ones, and that in
consequence of his ordination they, in due time, "believe"; that God's
ordination to salvation of his own elect, is not due to any good thing in them
nor to anything meritorious from them, but solely of his "grace";
that God has designedly selected the most unlikely
objects to be the recipients of his special favours, in order that "no
flesh should glory in his presence"; that God chose his people in Christ
before the foundation of the world, not because they were so, but in order that
they "should be, holy and
without blame before him"; that having selected certain ones to salvation,
he also decreed the means by which his eternal counsel should be made good;
that the very "grace" by which we are saved was, in God's purpose,
"given us in Christ Jesus before the world began"; that long before
they were actually created, God's elect stood present before mind, were
"foreknown" by him, i.e., were the definite objects of his eternal
love.
Before turning to the next division of this chapter, a further
word concerning the subjects of God's
predestinating grace. We go over this ground again because it is at this point
that the doctrine of God's sovereignty in predestining certain ones to
salvation is most frequently assaulted. Perverters of this truth invariably
seek to find some cause outside God's
own will, which moves him to bestow
salvation on sinners; something or other is attributed to the creature which
entitles him to receive mercy at the hands of the Creator. We return then to
the question, Why did God choose the
ones he did?
What was there in the elect themselves which attracted God's heart
to them? Was it because of certain virtues they possessed? because they were
generous hearted, sweet tempered, truth speaking? in a word, because they were
"good", that God chose them? No; for our Lord said, "There is
none good but one, that is God" (#Mt 19:17). Was it
because of any good works they had performed?
No; for it is written, "There is none that doeth good, no, not one" (#Ro 3:12). Was it
because they evidenced an earnestness and zeal in inquiring after God? No; for
it is written again, "There is none that seeketh after God" (#Ro 3:11). Was it
because God foresaw they would believe? No; for how can those who are "dead in trespasses and sins"
believe in Christ? How could God foreknow some men as believers when belief was
impossible to them? Scripture declares that we "believe through grace" (#Ac 18:27). Faith is
God's gift, and apart from this gift none would believe. The cause of his choice then lies within
himself and not in the objects of his choice. He chose the ones he did simply
because he chose to choose them.
"Sons we are by God's election
Who on Jesus Christ believe,
By eternal destination,
Sovereign grace we now receive,
Lord thy mercy,
Doth both grace and glory give!"
2. The
Sovereignty of God The Son in Salvation.
For whom did Christ die? It surely does not need arguing that the
Father had an express purpose in giving him to die, or that God the Son had a
definite design before him in laying down his life--"Known unto God are
all his works from the beginning of the world" (#Ac 15:18). What then
was the purpose of the Father and the design of the Son? We answer, Christ died
for "God's elect."
We are not unmindful of the fact that the limited design in the death of Christ has been the subject of much
controversy--what great truth revealed in Scripture has not? Nor do we forget
that anything which has to do with the person and work of our blessed Lord
requires to be handled with the utmost reverence, and that a "Thus saith
the Lord"; must be given in support of every assertion we make. Our appeal
shall be to the Law and to the Testimony.
For whom did Christ die? Who were the ones he intended to redeem
by his blood shedding? Surely the Lord Jesus had some absolute determination before him when he went to the Cross. If he
had, then it necessarily follows that the extent
of that purpose was limited, because
an absolute determination or purpose must be effected. If the absolute determination
of Christ included all mankind, then all mankind would most certainly be saved.
To escape this inevitable conclusion many have affirmed that there was no such
absolute determination before Christ, that in his death a merely conditional provision of salvation has
been made for all mankind. The refutation of this assertion is found in the promises made by the Father to his Son
before he went to the Cross, yea, before he became incarnate. The Old Testament
Scriptures represent the Father as promising the Son a certain reward for his sufferings on behalf of
sinners. At this stage we shall confine ourselves to one or two statements
recorded in the well known fifty-third of Isaiah. There we find God saying,
"When thou shalt make his soul an offering for sin, he shall see his
seed", that "he shall see of the travail of his soul, and shall be
satisfied", and that God's righteous Servant "should justify
many" (#Isa 53:10,11). But here we would pause and ask, how could it
be certain that Christ should "see his seed", and
"see of the travail of his soul and be satisfied",
unless the salvation of certain members of the human race had been divinely decreed, and therefore was
sure? How could it be certain that
Christ should "justify
many", if no effectual provision
was made that any should receive him
as their Saviour? On the other hand, to insist that the Lord Jesus did expressly purpose the salvation all mankind, is to charge him with that
which no intelligent being should be guilty of, namely, to design that which by virtue of his omniscience he knew would never come to pass. Hence,
the only alternative left us is that, so far as the predetermined purpose of
his death is concerned, Christ died for the elect only. Summing up in a
sentence, which we trust will be intelligible to every reader, we would say,
Christ died not merely to make possible
the salvation of all mankind, but to make
certain the salvation of all that the Father had given to him. Christ died
not simply to render sins pardonable, but "to put away sin by the sacrifice of himself" (#Heb 9:26). As to who's sin (i.e., guilt, as in #1Jo 1:7, etc.) has been
"put away", Scripture leaves us in no doubt--it was that of the
elect, the "world" (#Joh 1:29) of God's people!
(1.) The limited design
in the Atonement follows, necessarily, from the eternal choice of the Father of
certain ones unto salvation. The Scriptures inform us that, before the Lord
became incarnate he said, "Lo, I come, to do thy will O God" (#Heb 10:7), and after
he had become incarnate he declared, "For I came down from heaven, not to
do mine own will, but the will of him that sent me" (#Joh 6:38). If then
God had from the beginning chosen certain ones to salvation, then, because the
will of Christ was in perfect accord with the will of the Father, he would not
seek to enlarge, upon his election.
What we have just said is not merely a plausible deduction of our own, but is
in strict harmony with the express teaching of the Word. Again and again our
Lord referred to those whom the Father had "given" him, and
concerning whom he was particularly exercised. Said he, "All that the
Father giveth me shall come to me; and him that cometh to me I will in no wise
cast out ... And this is the Father's will which hath sent me, that of all
which he hath given me I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at
the last day" (#Joh 6:37,39). And again, "These words spake Jesus, and lifted up his
eyes to heaven, and said, Father, the hour is come; glorify thy Son, that thy
Son also may glorify thee; As thou hast given him power over all flesh, that he
should give eternal life to as many as
thou hast given him. ... I have manifested thy name unto the men which thou gavest me out of the world: thine they
were, and thou gavest them me; and they have kept thy word ... I pray for them:
I pray not for the world, but for them
which thou hast given me; for they
are thine ... Father, I will that they also, whom thou hast given me, be with me where I am; that they may
behold my glory, which thou hast given me: for thou lovest me before the
foundation of the world" (#John 17:1,2,6,9,24). Before
the foundation of the world the Father predestinated a people to be conformed
to the image of his Son, and the death and resurrection of the Lord Jesus was
in order to the carrying out of the divine purpose.
(2.) The very nature of the Atonement evidences that, in its application to
sinners, it was limited in the purpose of God. The Atonement of Christ
may be considered from two chief viewpoints--God-ward and man-ward. God-wards,
the cross work of Christ was a propitiation,
an appeasing of divine wrath, a satisfaction rendered to divine justice and
holiness; man-wards, it was a substitution,
the innocent taking the place of the guilty, the just dying for the unjust. But
a strict substitution of a person for persons, and the infliction upon him of
voluntary sufferings, involve the definite
recognition on the part of the substitute and of the one he is to
propitiate of the persons for whom he acts, whose sins he
bears, whose legal obligations he discharges. Furthermore, if the Lawgiver
accepts the satisfaction which is made by the Substitute then those for whom
the Substitute acts, whose place he takes, must necessarily be acquitted. If I
am in debt and unable to discharge it and another comes forward and pays my
creditor in full and receives a receipt in acknowledgment, then, in the sight
of the law, my creditor no longer has any claim upon me. On the cross the Lord
Jesus gave himself a ransom, and that it was accepted by God was attested by
the open grave three days later; the question we would here raise is, For whom was this ransom offered? If it
was offered for all mankind then the debt incurred by every man has been
cancelled. If Christ bore in his own body on the tree the sins of all men
without exception, then none here perish. If Christ was "made a curse"
for all of Adam's race then none are now "under condemnation".
"Payment God cannot twice
demand, first at my bleeding Surety's hand and then again at mine." But
Christ did not discharge the debt of
all men without exception, for some there are who will be "cast into
prison" (cf. #1Pe 3:19 where the same Greek word for prison occurs), and they
shall "by no means come out thence, till they have paid the uttermost farthing" (#Mt
5:26), which, of course, will never be. Christ
did not bear the sins of all mankind,
for some there are who die in their sins
(#Joh 8:21),
and whose "sin remaineth" (#Joh 9:41). Christ was not
"made a curse" for all of Adam's race, for some there are to whom he
will yet say, "Depart from me ye
cursed" (#Mt 25:41). To say that Christ died for all alike, to say that he
became the substitute and surety of the whole human race, to say that he
suffered on behalf of and in the stead of all mankind, is to say that he
"bore the curse for many who are now bearing the curse for themselves;
that he suffered punishment for many who are now lifting up their own eyes in
Hell, being in torments; that he paid the redemption price for many who shall
yet pay in their own eternal anguish `the wages of sin, which is death'"
(G.S. Bishop). But, on the other hand, to say as Scripture says, that Christ
was stricken for the transgressions of
God's people, to say that he gave his life for the sheep, to say
that he gave his life a ransom for many,
is to say that he made an atonement which fully atones; it is to say he paid a
price which actually ransoms; it is to say he was set forth a propitiation
which really propitiates; it is to say he is a Saviour who truly saves.
(3.) Closely connected with, and confirmatory of what we have said
above, is the teaching of Scripture concerning our Lord's priesthood. It is as the great High Priest that Christ now makes
intercession. But for whom does he
intercede? for the whole human race, or only for his own people? The answer
furnished by the New Testament to this question is clear as a sunbeam. Our
Saviour has entered into Heaven itself "now to appear in the presence of
God for us" (#Heb 9:24), that is,
for those who are "partakers of the heavenly calling" (#Heb 3:1). And again
it is written, "Wherefore he is able also to save them to the uttermost
that come unto God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them" (#Heb 7:25). This is
in strict accord with the Old Testament type. After slaying the sacrificial
animal, Aaron went into the Holy of Holies as the representative and on behalf
of the people of God: it was the names of Israel's
tribes which were engraven on his breastplate, and it was in their interests he appeared before God.
Agreeable to this are our Lord's words in #John 17:9--"I
pray for them: I pray not for the world,
but for them which thou hast given me; for they are thine." Another
scripture which deserves careful attention in this connection is found in #Ro 8:1-39. In #Ro 8:33 the
question is asked, "Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's elect?" and then follows
the inspired answer--"It is God that justifieth. Who is he that
condemneth? It is Christ that died, yea, rather that is risen again, who is
even at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us." Note particularly that the
death and intercession of Christ have one and the same objects! As it was in
the type so it is with the antitype-- expiation and supplication are co-extensive. If then Christ intercedes
for the elect only, and "not for the world", then he died for them
only. And observe further, that the death, resurrection, exaltation and
intercession of the Lord Jesus, are here assigned as the reason why none can lay
any "charge" against God's elect.
Let those who would still take issue with what we are advancing weigh carefully
the following question--If the death of Christ extends equally to all, how does
it become security against a
"charge", seeing that all who believe not are "under
condemnation"? (#Joh 3:18).
(4.) The number of those who share the benefits of Christ's death
is determined not only by the nature
of the Atonement and the priesthood
of Christ but also by his power.
Grant that the one who died upon the cross was God manifest in the flesh, and
it follows inevitably that what Christ has purposed that will he perform; that
what he has purchased that will he possess; that what he has set his heart upon
that will he secure. If the Lord Jesus possesses all power in heaven and earth,
then none can successfully resist his will. But it may be said, This is true in
the abstract, nevertheless, Christ refuses to exercise this power, in as much
as he will never force anyone to
receive him as their Saviour. In one sense that is true, but in another sense
it is positively untrue. The salvation of any sinner is a matter of divine power. By nature the sinner is at enmity with
God, and naught but divine power operating within him, can overcome this enmity; hence it is written, "No man can come
unto me, except the Father which hath
sent me draw him" (#Joh 6:44). It is the
divine power overcoming the sinner's innate enmity which makes him willing to come to Christ that he might
have life. But this "enmity" is not overcome in all --why? Is it
because the enmity is too strong to
be overcome? Are there some hearts so steeled against him that Christ is unable to gain entrance? To answer in
the affirmative is to deny his
omnipotence. In the final analysis it is not a question of the sinner's
willingness or unwillingness, for by nature all
are unwilling. Willingness to come to
Christ is the finished product of divine power operating in the human heart and
will in overcoming man's inherent and chronic "enmity", as it is
written, "Thy people shall, be willing in the day of thy power" (#Ps 110: 3). To say
that Christ is unable to win to
himself those who are unwilling is to deny that all power in heaven and earth
is his. To say that Christ cannot put forth his power without destroying man's
responsibility is a begging of the question here raised, for he has put forth his power and made
willing those who have come to him,
and if he did this without destroying their
responsibility, why "cannot" he do so with others? If he is able to
win the heart of one sinner to himself, why not that of another? To say, as is
usually said, the others will not let him
is to impeach his sufficiency. It is a question of his will. If the Lord Jesus has decreed, desired, purposed the
salvation of all mankind, then the entire human race will be saved, or, otherwise, he lacks the power to make good his
intentions; and in such a case it could never be said, "he shall see of the travail of his soul and
be satisfied." The issue raised
involves the deity of the Saviour,
for a defeated Saviour cannot be God.
Having reviewed some of the general principles
which require us to believe that the death of Christ was limited in its design, we turn now to consider some of the explicit
statements of Scripture which expressly affirm it. In that wondrous and
matchless fifty-third of Isaiah God tells us concerning his Son, "he was
taken from prison and from judgment: and who shall declare his generation? for
he was cut off out of the land of the living: for the transgression of my people was he stricken" (#Isa 53:8). In perfect harmony with this was the word of the angel
to Joseph, "Thou shalt call his name Jesus, for he shall save his people from their sins" (#Mt 1:21) i.e. not merely
Israel, but all whom the Father had "given" him. Our Lord himself
declared, "The Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister,
and to give his life a ransom for
many" (#Mt 20:28), but why have said for many if all without exception were included? It was his people whom he
"redeemed" (#Lu 1:68). It was for "the sheep", and not the
"goats", that the Good Shepherd gave his life (#Joh 10:11). It was the
"Church of God" which he purchased with "his own blood" (#Ac 20:28).
If there is one scripture more than any other upon which we should
be willing to rest our case it is #Joh 11:49-52. Here we
are told, "And one of them, named Caiaphas, being the high priest that
same year, said unto them, Ye know nothing at all, nor consider that it is
expedient for us, that one man should die for the people, and that the whole
nation perish not. And this spake he not of himself: but being high priest that
year, he prophesied that Jesus should die for that nation; And not for that
nation only, but that also he should gather together in one the children of God
that were scattered abroad". here we are told that Caiaphas
"prophesied not of himself",
that is, like those employed by God in Old Testament times (see #2Pe 1:21), his
prophecy originated not with himself, but he spake as he was moved by the Holy
Spirit; thus is the value of his utterance carefully guarded, and the Divine
source of this revelation expressly vouched for. Here, too, we are definitely
informed that Christ died for
"that nation", i.e., Israel, and also for the One Body, his Church,
for it is into the Church that the children of God--"scattered" among
the nations--are now being "gathered together in one". And is it not
remarkable that the members of the Church are here called "children of
God" even before Christ died, and therefore before he commenced to build
his Church! The vast majority of them had not then been born, yet were they
regarded as "children of God"; children of God because they had been
chosen in Christ before the foundation of the world, and therefore
"predestinated unto the adoption of
children by Jesus Christ to himself" (#Eph 1:4,5). In like
manner, Christ said, "Other sheep I
have (not "shall have")
which are not of this fold" (#Joh 10:16).
If ever the real design of the Cross was uppermost in the heart
and speech of our blessed Saviour it was during the last week of his earthly
ministry. What then do the Scriptures which treat of this portion of his ministry record in connection with our present
inquiry? They say, "When Jesus knew that his hour was come that he should
depart out of this world unto the Father, having
loved his own which were in the world, he
loved them unto the end" (#Joh 13:1). They tell
us how he said, "Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down
his life for his friends" (#Joh 15:13). They
record his word, "For their sakes I sanctify myself, that they
also might be sanctified through the truth" (#Joh 17:19); which
means, that for the sake of his own, those "given" to him by the
Father, he separated himself unto the death of the Cross. One may well ask, Why
such discrimination of terms if Christ died for all men indiscriminately?
Ere closing this section of the chapter we shall consider briefly
a few of those passages which seem to
teach most strongly an unlimited
design in the death of Christ. In #2Co 5:14 we read,
"One died for all." But that is not all this
scripture affirms. If the entire verse and passage from which these words are
quoted be carefully examined, it will be found that instead of teaching an
unlimited atonement, it emphatically argues a limited design in the death of
Christ. The whole verse reads, "For the love of Christ constraineth us;
because we thus judge, that if One died for all, then were all dead." It
should be pointed out that in the Greek there is the definite article before
the last "all", and that the verb here is in the aorist tense, and
therefore should read, "We thus judge: that if One died for all, then they
all died." The apostle is here drawing a conclusion as is clear from the
words "we thus judge, that if... then were." His meaning is, that
those for whom the One died are regarded, judicially,
as having died too. The next verse goes on to say, "And he died for all, that they which live should not
henceforth live unto themselves, but unto him which died for them, and rose again." The One not only died but
"rose again", and so, too, did the "all" for whom he died,
for it is here said they "live." Those for whom a substitute acts are
legally regarded as having acted themselves. In the sight of the law the
substitute and those whom he represents are one. So it is in the sight of God.
Christ was identified with his people
and his people were identified with him, hence when he died they died
(judicially) and when he rose they rose also. But further we are told in this
passage (#2Co 5:17), that if any man be in Christ he is a new creation; he has
received a new life in fact well as in the sight of the law, hence the
"all" for whom Christ died are here bidden to live henceforth no more
unto themselves, "but unto him which died for them, and rose again."
In other words, those who belonged to this "all" for whom Christ
died, are here exhorted to manifest practically in their daily lives what is
true of them judicially: they are to "live unto Christ who died for them." Thus the "One died for all" is defined for us. The
"all" for which Christ died are the they which "live", and
which are here bidden to live "unto him". This passage then teaches
three important truths, and the better to show its scope we mention them in
their inverse order: certain ones are here bidden to live no more unto
themselves but unto Christ; the ones thus admonished are "they which
live", that is live spiritually, hence, the children of God, for they
alone of mankind possess spiritual life, all others being dead in trespasses and sins; those who do thus live are the ones, the "all", the
"them", for whom Christ died and rose again. This passage therefore
teaches that Christ died for all his people, the elect, those given to him by
the Father; that as the result of his death (and rising again "for them") they
"live" --and the elect are the only
ones who do thus "live";
and this life which is theirs through Christ must be lived "unto
him", Christ's love must now
"constrain" them.
"For there is one God, and one Mediator, between God and
men" (not `man', for this would have been a generic term and signified
mankind. O the accuracy of Holy Writ!), "the Man Christ Jesus; who gave
himself a ransom for all, to be testified in due time" (#1Ti 2:5,6). It is
upon the words "who gave himself a ransom for all" we would now
comment. In Scripture the word "all" (as applied to mankind) is used
in two senses--absolutely and relatively. In some passages it means all without exception; in others it
signifies all without distinction. As to which of these
meanings it bears in any particular passage, must be determined by the context
and decided by a comparison of parallel scriptures. That the word
"all" is used in a relative and restricted sense, and in such case means all without distinction
and not all without exception, is
clear from a number of scriptures, from which we select two or three as
samples. "And there went out unto him all the land of Judea, and they of
Jerusalem, and were "all
baptized of him" in the river Jordan, confessing their sins" (#Mr 1:5). Does this
mean that every man, woman and child
from all the land of Judea and they
of Jerusalem were baptized of John in Jordan? Surely not. #Lu 7:30 distinctly
says, "But the Pharisees and lawyers rejected the counsel of God against
themselves, being not baptized of
him." Then what does "all
baptized of him" mean? We answer it does
not mean all without exception, but
all without distinction, that is, all classes and conditions of men. The same
explanation applies to #Lu 3:21. Again we read, "And early in the morning he came again into
the Temple, and all the people came unto him; and he sat
down, and taught them" (#Joh 8:2); are we to understand this
expression absolutely or relatively? Does "all the people" mean all
without exception or all without distinction, that is, all classes and
conditions of people? Manifestly the latter; for the Temple was not able to accommodate
everybody that was in Jerusalem at
this time, namely, the Feast of Tabernacles. Again, we read in #Ac 22:15, "For
thou (Paul) shalt be his witness unto
all men of what thou hast seen and
heard". Surely "all men" here does not mean every member of the
human race. Now we submit that the words "who gave himself a ransom for all" in #1Ti 2:6 mean all
without distinction, and not all
without exception. He gave himself a ransom for men of all nationalities, of
all generations, of all classes; in a word, for all the elect, as we read in #Re 5:9, "For
thou wast slain, and hast redeemed us to God by thy blood out of every kindred, and tongue, and people, and nation".
That this is not an arbitrary
definition of the "all" in our passage is clear from #Mt 20:28 where we
read, "The Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and
to give his life a ransom for many",
which limitation would be quite meaningless if he gave himself a ransom for all
without exception. Furthermore, the qualifying words here, "to be
testified in due time", must be taken into consideration. If Christ gave
himself a ransom for the whole human race, in what sense will this be "testified in due time"?
seeing that multitudes men will certainly be eternally lost. But if our text
means that Christ gave himself a ransom for God's elect, for all without
distinction, without distinction of nationality, social prestige, moral
character, age or sex, then the meaning of these qualifying words is quite
intelligible, for in "due time" this will be "testified" in the actual and accomplished
salvation of every one of them.
"But we see Jesus, who was made a little lower than the angels for the
suffering of death, crowned with glory and honour; that he by the grace of God
should taste death for every man"
(#heb
2:9). This passage need not detain us long. A false doctrine has been
erected here on a false translation. There is no word whatever in the Greek
corresponding to "man" in our English version. In the Greek it is
left in the abstract--"he tasted death for every". The Revised
Version has correctly omitted
"man" from the text, but has wrongly inserted it in italics. Others
suppose the word "thing" should be supplied--"he tasted death
for every thing"--but this, too, we deem a mistake. It seems to us that
the words which immediately follow explain our text: "For it became him, for whom are all things, and whom are all
things, in bringing many sons unto glory, make the captain of their salvation
perfect through sufferings." It is of "sons"
the apostle is here writing, and suggest an ellipsis
of "son"--thus: "he tasted death for every"--and supply son in italics. Thus instead of teaching
the unlimited design of Christ's death, #heb 2:9,10 is in perfect accord with the other
scriptures we have quoted which set forth the restricted purpose in the Atonement: was for the "sons"
and not the human race our Lord "tasted death". {a}
In closing this section of the chapter let us
say that the only limitation in the Atonement we have contended for arises from
pure sovereignty; it is a limitation
not of value and virtue, but of design
and application. We turn now to consider--
3. The Sovereignty Of God The Holy Spirit In Salvation.
Since the Holy Spirit is one of the three Persons in the blessed
Trinity, it necessarily follows that he is in full sympathy with the will and
design of the other Persons of the Godhead. The eternal purpose of the Father in election, the limited design in the death of the Son, and the restricted scope of the Holy Spirit's
operations are in perfect accord. If the Father chose certain ones before the
foundation of the world and gave them to his Son, and if it was for them that
Christ gave himself a ransom, then the Holy Spirit is not now working to
"bring the world to Christ." The mission of the Holy Spirit in the world today is to apply the benefits of Christ's
redemptive sacrifice. The question which is now to engage us is not the extent of the Holy Spirit's power---on that point there can be no
doubt, it is infinite--but what we shall seek to show is that, his power and
operations are directed by Divine
wisdom and sovereignty.
We have just said that the power and operations of the Holy Spirit
are directed by Divine wisdom and indisputable sovereignty. In proof of this
assertion we appeal first to our Lord's words to Nicodemus in #Joh 3:8:--"The
wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst
not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth; so is every one that is born
of the Spirit." A comparison is here drawn between the wind and the
Spirit. The comparison is a double
one: first, both are sovereign in their
actions, and second, both are mysterious
in their operations. The comparison is pointed out in the word
"so." The first point of analogy is seen in the words "where it
listeth" or "pleaseth"; the second is found in the words
"canst not tell". With the second point of analogy we are not now
concerned, but upon the first we would comment further.
"The wind bloweth where
it pleaseth ... so is every one that is born of the Spirit." The wind is an element which man can neither
harness nor hinder. The wind neither consults man's pleasure nor can it be
regulated by his devices. So it is with the Spirit. The wind blows when it
pleases, where it pleases, as it pleases. So it is with the Spirit. The wind is
regulated by divine wisdom, yet, so far as man is concerned, it is absolutely sovereign in its operations. So it is
with the Spirit. Sometimes the wind blows so softly it scarcely rustles a leaf;
at other times it blows so loudly that its roar can be heard for miles. So it
is in the matter of the new birth; with some the Holy Spirit deals so gently,
that his work is imperceptible to human onlookers; with others his action is so
powerful, radical, revolutionary, that his operations are patent to many.
Sometimes the wind is purely local in its reach, at other times wide spread in
its scope. So it is with the Spirit: today he acts on one or two souls,
tomorrow he may, as at Pentecost, "prick in the heart" a whole
multitude. But whether he works on few or many, he consults not man. he acts as he pleases. The new birth is due to the sovereign will of the Spirit. Each of the three Persons in the
blessed Trinity is concerned with our salvation: with the Father it is
predestination; with the Son propitiation; with the Spirit regeneration. The
Father chose us; the Son died for us; the Spirit quickens us. The Father was
concerned about us; the Son shed his
blood for us, the Spirit performs his
work within us. What the one did was eternal,
what the other did was external, what
the Spirit does is internal. It is
with the work of the Spirit we are now concerned, with his work in the new
birth, and particularly his sovereign
operations in the new birth. The Father purposed our new birth; the Son has
made possible (by his "travail") the new birth; but it is the Spirit
who effects the new birth--"born of the Spirit" (#Joh 3:6).
The new birth is solely the work of God the Spirit and man has no
part or lot in it. This from the very nature of the case. Birth altogether
excludes the idea of any effort or work on the part of the one who is born.
Personally we have no more to do with our spiritual birth than we had with our
natural birth. The new birth is a spiritual resurrection, a "passing from
death unto life" (#Joh 5:24) and, clearly, resurrection is altogether outside of man's province. No corpse can reanimate itself. Hence it
is written, "It is the Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing" (#Joh 6:63). But the
Spirit does not "quicken" everybody --why? The usual answer returned
to this question is, because everybody does not trust in Christ. It is supposed
that the Holy Spirit quickens only those who believe. But this is to put the
cart before the horse. Faith is not the cause of the new birth, but the
consequence of it. This ought not to need arguing. Faith (in God) is an exotic,
something that is not native to the human heart. If faith were a natural product of the human heart, the exercise of a
principle common to human nature, it would never have been written, "All
men have not faith" (#2Th 3:2). Faith is a spiritual grace, the
fruit of the spiritual nature, and because the unregenerate are spiritually
dead--"dead in trespasses and sins"--then it follows that faith from
them is impossible, for a dead man cannot believe anything. "So then they
that are in the flesh cannot please God" (#Ro 8:8)--but they could if it were possible for the flesh
to believe. Compare with this last quoted scripture #Heb 11: 6--"But
without faith it is impossible to please him." Can God be
"pleased" or satisfied with any thing which does not have its origin
in himself?
That the work of the Holy Spirit precedes our believing is unequivocally established by #2Th 2:13--"God
hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation through sanctification of the
Spirit and belief of the truth." Note that "sanctification of the
Spirit" comes before and makes possible "belief of the truth."
What then is the "sanctification of the Spirit"? We answer, the new birth. In Scripture
"sanctification" always
means "separation", separation from something and unto something or
someone. Let us now amplify our assertion that the "sanctification of the
Spirit" corresponds to the new birth and points to the positional effect
of it.
Here is a servant of God who preaches the Gospel to a congregation
in which are an hundred unsaved people. He brings before them the teaching of
Scripture concerning their ruined and lost condition; he speaks of God, his
character and righteous demands; he tells of Christ meeting God's demands, and
dying the just for the unjust, and declares that through "this man"
is now preached the forgiveness of sins; he closes by urging the lost to
believe what God has said in his Word and receive his Son as their own personal
Saviour. The meeting is over; the congregation disperses; ninety-nine of the unsaved
have refused to come to Christ that they might have life, and go out into the
night having no hope, and without God in the world. But the hundredth heard the
Word of life; the seed sown fell into ground which had been prepared by God; he
believed the Good News, and goes home rejoicing that his name is written in
Heaven. he has been "born again", and just as a newly born babe in
the natural world begins life by clinging instinctively, in its helplessness,
to its mother, so this newborn soul has clung to Christ. Just as we read,
"The Lord opened" the heart of Lydia "that she attended unto the things which were spoken of
Paul" (#Ac 16:14),
so in the case supposed above, the Holy Spirit quickened that one before he
believed the Gospel message. Here then is the "sanctification of the
Spirit": this one soul who has been born again has, by virtue of his new
birth, been separated from the other
ninety-nine. Those born again are, by the Spirit, set apart from those who are dead
in trespasses and sins. A beautiful type of the operations of the Holy Spirit antecedent to the sinner's "belief
of the truth", is found in the first chapter of Genesis (#Ge 1:1). We read in (#Ge 1:2), "And the
earth was without form, and void; and darkness was upon the face of the deep".
The original Hebrew here might be literally rendered thus: "And the earth had become@ a desolate ruin, and darkness
was upon the face of the deep". In "the beginning" the earth
was not created in the condition described in (#Ge
1:2). Between #Ge
1:1 and #Ge
1:2 some awful catastrophe had
occurred--possibly the fall of Satan--and, as the consequence, the earth had
been blasted and blighted, and had become a "desolate ruin", lying
beneath a pall of "darkness". Such also is the history of man. Today,
man is not in the condition in which he left the hands of his Creator: an awful
catastrophe has happened, and now man is a "desolate ruin" and in
total "darkness" concerning spiritual things. Next we read in #Ge 1:1-31 how God
refashioned the ruined earth and created new beings to inhabit it. First we
read, "And the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters". Next we
are told, "And God said, Let
there be light; and there was light". The order is the same in the new
creation: there is first the action of the Spirit, and then the Word of God
giving light. Before the Word found
entrance into the scene of desolation and darkness, bringing with it the light,
the Spirit of God "moved". So it is in the new creation. "The
entrance of thy words giveth light" (#Ps
119:130), but before it can enter the darkened human heart the Spirit of God must
operate upon it. {b}
To return to #2Th 2:13: "But we are bound to give
thanks always to God for you, brethren beloved of the Lord, because God hath
from the beginning chosen you to salvation through sanctification of the Spirit
and belief of the truth." The order
of thought here is most important and instructive. First, God's eternal choice;
second, the sanctification of the Spirit; third, belief of the truth. Precisely
the same order is found in #1Pe 1:2--"Elect according to the
foreknowledge of God the Father, through sanctification of the Spirit, unto
obedience and sprinkling of the blood of Jesus Christ." We take it that
the "obedience" here is the "obedience of faith" (#Ro 1:5), which
appropriates the virtues of the sprinkled blood of the Lord Jesus. So then before the obedience (of faith, cf. #Heb 5:9), there is
the work of the Spirit setting us apart, and behind that is the election of God
the Father. The ones "sanctified of the Spirit" then, are they whom
"God hath from the beginning chosen to salvation" (#2Th 2:13), those who
are "elect according to the foreknowledge of God the Father" (#1Pe 1:2).
But, it may be said, is not the present mission of the Holy Spirit
to "convict the world of
sin"? And we answer, It is not. The mission
of the Spirit is threefold; to glorify Christ, to vivify the elect, to edify
the saints. #Joh 16:8-11 does not describe the "mission" of the Spirit, but sets
forth the significance of his presence here in the world. It treats
not of his subjective work in sinners, showing them their need of Christ, by
searching their consciences and striking terror to their hearts; what we have
there is entirely objective. To illustrate. Suppose I saw a man hanging on the
gallows, of what would that
"convince" me? Why, that he was a murderer. how would I thus be convinced? By reading the record of his trial?
by hearing a confession from his own lips? No; but by the fact that he was hanging there. So the fact that the
Holy Spirit is here furnishes proof
of the world's guilt, of God's righteousness, and of the Devil's judgment.
The Holy Spirit ought not to be here at all. That is a startling
statement, but we make it deliberately. Christ
is the one who ought to be here. He
was sent here by the Father, but the world did not want him, would not have
him, hated him, and cast him out. And the presence of the Spirit here instead evidences its guilt. The coming of the
Spirit was a proof to demonstration of the resurrection, ascension, and glory
of the Lord Jesus. His presence on earth reverses the world's verdict, showing
that God has set aside the blasphemous judgment in the palace of Israel's high
priest and in the hall of the Roman governor. The "reproof" of the Spirit
abides, and abides altogether irrespective of the world's reception or
rejection of his testimony.
Had our Lord been referring here to the gracious
work which the Spirit would perform in
those who should be brought to feel their need of him, he had said that the
Spirit would convict men of their unrighteousness,
their lack of righteousness. But this is not the thought here at all. The
descent of the Spirit from Heaven establishes God's righteousness, Christ's righteousness. The proof of that is,
Christ has gone to the Father. Had
Christ been an Imposter, as the religious world insisted when they cast him
out, the Father had not received him. The fact that the Father did exalt him to his own right hand,
demonstrates that he was innocent of the charges laid against him; and the
proof that the Father has received
him, is the presence now of the Holy Spirit on earth, for Christ has sent him from the Father (#Joh 16:7)! The world was
unrighteous in casting him out, the Father righteous in glorifying him; and
this is what the Spirit's presence here establishes.
"Of judgment, because the Prince of this world is
judged" (#Joh 16:11). This is the logical and inevitable climax. The world is brought
in guilty for their rejection of, for their refusal to receive, Christ. Its
condemnation is exhibited by the Father's exaltation of the spurned One.
Therefore nothing awaits the world, and its Prince, but judgment. The
"judgment" of Satan is already established by the Spirit's presence
here, for Christ, through death, set at nought him who had the power of death,
that is, the Devil (#Heb 2:14). When God's time comes for the Spirit to depart from the earth,
then his sentence will be executed,
both on the world and its Prince. In the light of this unspeakably solemn
passage, we need not be surprised to find Christ saying, "The Spirit of
truth, whom the world cannot receive,
because it seeth him not, neither knoweth him". No, the world wants him
not; he condemns the world.
"And when he is come, he will reprove (or, better,
"convict"--bring in guilty) the world of sin, and of righteousness,
and of judgment: Of sin, because they believe not on me; Of righteousness,
because I go to my Father, and ye see me no more; Of judgment, because the
prince of this world is judged" (#Joh 16:8-11). Three
things, then, the presence of the Holy Spirit on earth demonstrates to the
world: first, its sin, because the world refused to believe on Christ; second,
God's righteousness in exalting to his own right hand the one cast out, and now
no more seen by the world; third, judgment, because Satan the world's prince is
already judged, though execution of his judgment is yet future. Thus the Holy
Spirit's presence here displays
things as they really are.
The Holy Spirit is sovereign in his operations and his mission is
confined to God's elect: they are the ones he "comforts",
"seals", guides into all truth, shows things to come, etc. The work
of the Spirit is necessary in order
to the complete accomplishment of the Father's eternal purpose. Speaking
hypothetically, but reverently, be it said, that if God had done nothing more
than given Christ to die for sinners, not a single sinner would ever have been
saved. In order for any sinner to see his need
of a Saviour and be willing to receive the Saviour he needs, the work
of the Holy Spirit upon and within him were imperatively required. Had God done
nothing more than given Christ to die for sinners and then sent forth his
servants to proclaim salvation through Christ, leaving sinners entirely to
themselves to accept or reject as they
pleased, then every sinner would have
rejected, because at heart every man
hates God and is at enmity with him. Therefore the work of the Holy Spirit was
needed to bring the sinner to Christ, to overcome his innate opposition, and
compel him to accept the provision God has made. We say "compel" the
sinner, for this is precisely what the Holy Spirit does, has to do, and this
leads us to consider at some length, though as briefly as possible, the parable
of the "Marriage Supper".
In #Lu 14:16 we read, "A certain man made a great supper, and bade
many." By comparing carefully what
follows here with #Mt 22:2-10 several important distinctions will be observed. We take it that
these passages are two independent accounts of the same parable, differing in
detail according to the distinctive purpose and design of the Holy Spirit in
each Gospel. Matthew's account--in harmony with the Spirit's presentation there
of Christ as the Son of David, the King of the Jews--says, "A certain king made a marriage for his son."
Luke's account--where the Spirit presents Christ as the Son of Man--says,
"A certain man made a great
supper and bade many." #Mt 22:3 says,
"And sent forth his servants";
#Lu
14:17 says, "And sent his servant."
Now what we wish particularly to call attention to is, that all through
Matthew's account it is "servants", whereas in Luke it is always
"servant." The class of readers for whom we are writing are those
that believe, unreservedly, in the verbal
inspiration of the Scriptures, and such will readily acknowledge there must be
some reason for this change from the plural number in Matthew to the singular
number in Luke. We believe the reason is a weighty one and that attention to
this variation reveals an important truth. We believe that the
"servants" in Matthew, speaking generally, are all who go forth preaching the Gospel, but that the
"Servant" in #Lu 14:17 is the Holy Spirit himself. This is not incongruous, or
derogatory to the Holy Spirit, for God the Son, in the days of his earthly
ministry, was the Servant of Jehovah (#Isa 42:1). It will
be observed that in #Mt 22:3 the "servants" are sent forth to do three things:
first, to "call" to the
wedding (#Mt 22:3); second, to "tell
those which are bidden ... all things are ready: come unto the marriage" (#Isa 42:4); third, to
"bid to the marriage" (#Isa 42:9); and these
three are the things which those who minister the Gospel today are now doing.
In #Lu 14:17 the Servant is also sent forth to do three things: first, he is
"to say to them that were
bidden, Come: for all things are now ready" (#Lu 14:17); second,
he is to "bring in the poor, and
the maimed, and the halt, and the blind" (#Lu 14:21); third, he
is to "compel them to come
in" (#Lu 14:23), and the last two of these the Holy Spirit alone can do!
In the above scripture we see that "the Servant", the Holy Spirit, compels certain ones to come in to the "supper" and
herein is seen his sovereignty, his omnipotency, his divine sufficiency. The
clear implication from this word "compel" is, that those whom the
Holy Spirit does "bring in"
are not willing of themselves to come. This is exactly what we have
sought to show in previous paragraphs. By nature, God's elect are children of
wrath even as others (#Eph 2:3), and as
such their hearts are at enmity with God. But this "enmity" of theirs
is overcome by the Spirit and he "compels" them to come in. Is it not clear then that the reason why others are left outside, is not only
because they are unwilling to go in,
but also because the Holy Spirit does not "compel" them to come in? Is it not manifest that
the Holy Spirit is sovereign in the
exercise of his power, that as the wind "bloweth where it pleaseth", so the Holy Spirit operates where he pleases?
And now to sum up. We have sought to show the perfect consistency
of God's ways: that each Person in the Godhead acts in sympathy and harmony
with the others. God the Father elected certain ones to salvation, God the Son
died for the elect, and God the Spirit quickens the elect. Well may we sing,
Praise God from whom all blessings flow,
Praise him all creatures here below,
Praise him above ye heavenly host,
Praise Father,
Son, and Holy Ghost.
{a} 1 John 2:2 will be
examined in detail in Appendix 4. 1415
{b} The priority contended for above is rather
in order of nature than of time, just as the effect must ever be preceded by the cause. A blind man must have his eyes
opened before he can see, and yet there is no
interval of time between the one and the other. As soon as his eyes are
opened, he sees. So a man must be born again before he can "see the kingdom of God" (#Joh 3:3). Seeing the Son is necessary to believing
in him. Unbelief is attributed to spiritual blindhess--those
who believed not the "report" of the Gospel "saw no beauty"
in Christ that they should desire him. The work of the Spirit in
"quickening" the one dead in sins, precedes faith in Christ, just as cause ever precedes effect. But
no sooner is the heart turned toward
Christ by the Spirit, than the Saviour is embraced by the sinner.
Chapter 5 --
The Sovereignty Of God In Reprobation.
"Behold therefore the goodness and the severity of God"
(#Ro 11:22).
In the last chapter when treating of the Sovereignty of God the
Father in Salvation, we examined seven passages which represent him as making a
choice from among the children of men, and predestinating certain ones to be
conformed to the image of his Son. The thoughtful reader will naturally ask,
And what of those who were not
"ordained to eternal life?" The answer which is usually returned to
this question, even by those who profess to believe what the Scriptures teach
concerning God's sovereignty, is, that God passes
by the non-elect, leaves them alone to go their own way, and in the
end casts them into the Lake of Fire because they refused his way, and rejected the Saviour of his providing. But this is
only a part of the truth; the other part--that which is most offensive to the
carnal mind--is either ignored or denied.
In view of the awful solemnity of the subject here before us, in
view of the fact that today almost all--even those who profess to be
Calvinists--reject and repudiate this doctrine, and in view of the fact that
this is one of the points in our book which is calculated to raise the most
controversy, we feel that an extended enquiry into this aspect of God's Truth
is demanded. That this branch of the subject of God's sovereignty is profoundly
mysterious we freely allow, yet, that is no reason why we should reject it. The
trouble is that, nowadays, there are so many who receive the testimony of God only so far as they can satisfactorily
account for all the reasons and grounds of his conduct, which means they will
accept nothing but that which can be measured in the petty scales of their own limited capacities.
Stating it in its baldest form the point now to be considered is,
has God foreordained certain ones to damnation? That many will be eternally damned is clear from Scripture, that each one
will be judged according to his works and reap as he has sown, and that in
consequence his "damnation is just" (#Ro 3:8), is
equally sure, and that God decreed
that the non-elect should choose the
course they follow we now undertake
to prove.
From what has been before us in the previous chapter concerning
the election of some to salvation, it
would unavoidably follow, even if Scripture had been silent upon it, that there
must be a rejection of others. Every choice, evidently and
necessarily implies a refusal, for where there is no leaving out there can be
no choice. If there be some whom God has elected unto salvation (#2Th 2:3), there
must be others who are not elected
unto salvation. If there are some that the Father gave to Christ (#Joh 6:37), there
must be others whom he did not give unto Christ. If there are some whose names
are written in the Lamb's book of Life (#Re 21:27), there
must be others whose names are not
written there. That this is the case
we shall fully prove below.
Now all will acknowledge that from the foundation of the world God
certainly foreknew and foresaw who would and who would not receive Christ as
their Saviour, therefore in giving being and birth to those he knew would reject Christ, he necessarily created them unto damnation. All that can be said in reply to this is, No, while
God did foreknow these ones would
reject Christ, yet he did not decree
that they should. But this is a
begging of the real question at issue. God had a definite reason why he created men, a specific purpose
why he created this and that individual, and in view of the eternal destination
of his creatures, he purposed either
that this one should spend eternity in Heaven or that this one should spend
eternity in the Lake of Fire. If then he foresaw that in creating a certain
person that that person would despise and reject the Saviour, yet knowing this
beforehand he, nevertheless, brought that person into existence, then it is
clear he designed and ordained that that person should be eternally lost.
Again; faith is God's gift, and the purpose to give it only to some, involves
the purpose not to give it to others.
Without faith there is no salvation--"he that believeth not shall be
damned"--hence if there were some of Adam's descendants to whom he
purposed not to give faith, it must be, because he ordained that they should be damned.
Not only is there no escape from these conclusions, but history confirms them. Before the Divine
Incarnation, for almost two thousand years, the vast majority of mankind were
left destitute of even the external means of grace, being favoured with no
preaching of God's Word and with no written revelation of his will. For many
long centuries Israel was the only
nation to whom the Deity vouchsafed any special discovery of himself--"Who
in times past suffered all nations to
walk in their own ways" (#Ac 14:16) --"You only (Israel) have I known of all the families of the earth" (#Am 3:2).
Consequently, as all other nations were deprived of the preaching of God's
Word, they were strangers to the faith that cometh thereby (#Ro 10:17). These
nations were not only ignorant of God himself, but of the way to please him, of
the true manner of acceptance with him, and the means of arriving at the
everlasting enjoyment of himself.
Now if God had willed their salvation, would he not have
vouchsafed them the means of salvation? Would he not have given them all things
necessary to that end? But it is an undeniable matter of fact that he did not. If, then, Deity can,
consistently, with his justice, mercy, and benevolence, deny to some the means
of grace, and shut them up in gross darkness and unbelief (because of the sins
of their forefathers, generations before), why should it be deemed incompatible
with his perfections to exclude some persons, many, from grace itself, and from
that eternal life which is connected with it? seeing that he is Lord and
sovereign disposer both of the end to which the means lead, and the means which
lead to that end?
Coming down to our own day, and to those in our own
country--leaving out the almost unnumberable crowds of unevangelized
heathen--is it not evident that there are many living in lands where the Gospel
is preached, lands which are full of
churches, who die strangers to God and his holiness? True, the means of grace
were close to their hand, but many of them knew it not. Thousands are born into
homes where they are taught from infancy to regard all Christians as hypocrites
and preachers as arch humbugs. Others, are instructed from the cradle in Roman
Catholicism, and are trained to regard Evangelical Christianity as deadly
heresy, and the Bible as a book highly dangerous for them to read. Others,
reared in "Christian Science" families, know no more of the true Gospel
of Christ than do the unevangelized heathen. The great majority of these die in
utter ignorance of the Way of Peace. Now are we not obliged to conclude that it was not God's will to communicate grace
to them? Had his will been otherwise,
would he not have actually
communicated his grace to them? If, then, it was the will of God, in time, to refuse to them his grace, it must have
been his will from all eternity, since his will is, as himself, the same
yesterday, and today and forever. Let it not be forgotten that God's providences are but the manifestations of his decrees: what God does in time is only what he purposed
in eternity--his own will being the alone cause of all his acts and works.
Therefore from his actually leaving some men in final impenitency and unbelief
we assuredly gather it was his everlasting determination so to do; and
consequently that he reprobated some from before the foundation of the world.
In the Westminster Confession it is said, "God from all
eternity did by the most wise and holy counsel of his own will, freely and
unchangeably foreordain whatsoever
comes to pass". The late Mr. F.W. Grant--a most careful and cautious
student and writer--commenting on these words said: "It is perfectly,
divinely true, that God hath ordained for his own glory whatsoever comes to
pass." Now if these statements are true, is not the doctrine of
Reprobation established by them? What, in human history, is the one thing which
does come to pass every day? What,
but that men and women die, pass out of this world into a hopeless eternity, an
eternity of suffering and woe. If then God has
foreordained whatsoever comes to pass
then he must have decreed that vast numbers of human beings should pass out of
this world unsaved to suffer eternally in the Lake of Fire. Admitting the
general premise, is not the specific conclusion inevitable?
In reply to the preceding paragraphs the reader may say, All this
is simply reasoning, logical no
doubt, but yet mere inferences. Very well, we will now point out that in
addition to the above conclusions there are many passages in Holy Writ, which
are most clear and definite in their teaching on this solemn subject; passages
which are too plain to be misunderstood and too strong to be evaded. The marvel
is that so many good men have denied their undeniable affirmations.
"Joshua made war a long time with all those
kings. There was not a city that made peace with the children of Israel, save
the Hivites the inhabitants of Gibeon: all other they took in battle. For it
was of the Lord to harden their hearts, that they should come against Israel in
battle, that he might destroy them utterly, and that they might have no favour,
but that he might destroy them, as the Lord commanded Moses" (#Jos 11:18-20). What could
be plainer than this? Here was a large number of Canaanites whose hearts the
Lord hardened, whom he had purposed to utterly destroy, to whom he showed "no favour". Granted that they
were wicked, immoral, idolatrous; were they any
worse than the immoral, idolatrous cannibals of the South Sea Islands (and many
other places), to whom God gave the Gospel through John G. Paton! Assuredly
not. Then why did not Jehovah command Israel to teach the Canaanites his laws
and instruct them concerning sacrifices to the true God? Plainly, because he
had marked them out for destruction,
and if so, that from all eternity.
"The Lord hath made all things for himself: yea, even the
wicked for the day of evil." (#Pr 16:4). That the
Lord made all, perhaps every reader
of this book will allow: that he made all for
himself is not so widely believed. That God made us, not for our own sakes,
but for himself; not for our own happiness, but for his glory; is,
nevertheless, repeatedly affirmed in Scripture--#Re 4:11. But #Pr 16:4 goes even
farther: it expressly declares that the Lord made the wicked for the day of evil: that was his design in giving them being. But why? Does not #Ro 9:17 tell us, "For the Scripture
saith unto Pharaoh, Even for this purpose have I raised thee up, that I might
show my power in thee, and that my name might be declared throughout all the
earth"! God has made the wicked that at the end, he may demonstrate "his
power"--demonstrate it by showing what an easy matter it is for him to
subdue the stoutest rebel and to overthrow his mightiest enemy.
"And then will I profess unto them, I never knew you: depart
from me, ye that work iniquity" (#Mt 7:23). In the
previous chapter it has been shown that, the words "know" and
"foreknowledge" when applied to God in the Scriptures, have reference
not simply to his prescience (i.e. his bare
knowledge beforehand), but to his
knowledge of approbation. When God
said to Israel, "You only have I known
of all the families of the earth" (#Am 3:2), it is
evident that he meant, "You only had I any favourable regard to."
When we read in #Ro 11:2 God hath not cast away his people (Israel) whom he foreknew", it is obvious that what
was signified is, "God has not finally rejected that people whom he has
chosen as the objects of his love
--cf. #De 7:7,8. In the same way (and it is the only possible way) are we to understand #Mt 7:23. In the day
of judgment the Lord will say unto many, "I never knew you". Note, it
is more than simply "I know you not". His solemn declaration will be,
"I never knew you"--you were
never the objects of my approbation. Contrast this with "I know (love) my sheep, and am known
(loved) of mine" (#Joh 10:14). The "sheep", his elect, the "few", he does
"know"; but the reprobate, the non-elect, the "many" he
knows not--no, not even before the
foundation of the world did he know them--he "NEVER" knew them!
In #Ro 9:1-33 the doctrine of God's sovereignty in its application to both, the
elect and the reprobate is treated of at length. A detailed exposition of this
important chapter would be beyond our present scope; all that we can essay is
to dwell upon the part of it which most clearly bears upon the aspect of the
subject which we are now considering.
#Ro 9:17. "For the Scripture
saith unto Pharaoh, Even for this same purpose
have I raised thee up that I might show my, power in thee, and that my name might be declared
throughout all the earth." These words refer us back to #Ro 9:13 and #Ro 9:14. In #Ro 9:13 God's love
to Jacob and his hatred to Esau are declared. In #Ro 9:14 it is asked
"Is there unrighteousness with God?"
and here in #Ro 9:17 the apostle continues
his reply to the objection. We cannot do better now than quote from Calvin's
comments upon this verse. "There are here two things to be considered,
--the predestination of Pharaoh to ruin, which is to be referred to the past
and yet the hidden counsel of God,--and then, the design of this, which was to
make known the name of God. As many interpreters, striving to modify this
passage, pervert it, we must first observe, that for the word "I have
raised thee up", or stirred up, in the Hebrew is, "I have
appointed", by which it appears, that God, designing to show that the
contumacy of Pharaoh would not prevent him to deliver his people, not only
affirms that his fury had been foreseen by him, and that he had prepared means
for restraining it, but that he had also thus designedly ordained it and indeed for this end, --that he might
exhibit a more illustrious evidence of his own power." It will be observed
that Calvin gives as the force of the Hebrew word which Paul renders "For
this purpose have I raised thee up",--"I have appointed". As this is the word on
which the doctrine and argument of the verse turns we would further point out
that in making this quotation from #Ex 9:16 the apostle
significantly departs from the Septuagint--the version then in common use, and
from which he most frequently quotes--and substitutes a clause for the first
that is given by the Septuagint: instead of "On this account thou hast
been preserved", he gives "For this very end have I raised thee
up"!
But we must now consider in more detail the case of Pharaoh which
sums up in concrete example the great controversy between man and his Maker.
"For now I will stretch out my hand, that I may smite thee and thy people
with pestilence; and thou shalt be cut off from the earth. And in very deed for this
cause have I raised thee up, for to show in thee my power; and that my name
may be declared throughout all the earth" (#Ex 9:15,16). Upon
these words we offer the following comments:
First, we know from #Ex 14:1-15:27 that
Pharaoh was cut off, that he was cut
off by God, that he was cut off in the very midst of his wickedness, that he
was cut off not by sickness nor by the infirmities which are incident to old
age, nor by what men term an accident, but cut off by the immediate hand of God in judgment.
Second, it is dear that God raised up Pharaoh for this very end--to
"cut him off", which in the language of the New Testament means
"destroyed." God never does anything without a previous design. In
giving him being, in preserving him through infancy and childhood, in raising
him to the throne of Egypt, God had one end in view. That such was God's purpose is clear from his
words to Moses before he went down to Egypt, to demand of Pharaoh that
Jehovah's people should be allowed to go a three days' journey into the
wilderness to worship him--"And the Lord said unto Moses, When thou goest
to return into Egypt, see that thou do all these wonders before Pharaoh, which
I have put in thine hand: but I will
harden his heart, that he shall not let the people go" (#Ex 4:21). But not
only so, God's design and purpose was declared long before this. Four hundred
years previously God had said to Abraham, "Know of a surety that thy seed
shall be a stranger in a land that is not theirs, and shall serve them; and
they shall afflict them four hundred years; and also that nation, whom they
shall serve, will I judge" (#Ge 15:13,14). From
these words it is evident (a nation and its king being looked at as one in the
Old Testament) that God's purpose was formed long before he gave Pharaoh being.
Third, an examination of God's dealings with Pharaoh makes it
clear that Egypt's king was indeed a "vessel of wrath fitted to
destruction." Placed on Egypt's throne, with the reins of government in
his hands, he sat as head of the nation which occupied the first rank among the
peoples of the world. There was no other monarch on earth able to control or
dictate to Pharaoh. To such a dizzy height did God raise this reprobate, and
such a course was a natural and necessary step to prepare him for his final
fate, for it is a divine axiom that "pride goeth before destruction and a
haughty spirit before a fall." Further, --and this is deeply important to
note and highly significant--God removed from Pharaoh the one outward restraint
which was calculated to act as a check upon him. The bestowing upon Pharaoh of
the unlimited powers of a king was setting him above all legal influence and
control. But besides this, God removed
Moses from his presence and kingdom. Had Moses, who not only was skilled in
all the wisdom of the Egyptians but also had been reared in Pharaoh's
household, been suffered to remain in close proximity to the throne, there can
be no doubt but that his example and influence had been a powerful check upon
the king's wickedness and tyranny. This, though not the only cause, was plainly
one reason why God sent Moses into Midian, for it was during his absence that Egypt's inhuman king framed
his most cruel edicts. God designed, by removing this restraint, to give
Pharaoh full opportunity to fill up the full measure of his sins, and ripen
himself for his fully deserved but predestined ruin.
Fourth, God "hardened" his heart as he
declared he would (#Ex 4:21). This is in full accord with the declarations of Holy
Scripture--"The preparations of the heart in man, and the answer of the
tongue, is from the Lord" (#Pr 16:1); "The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, as
the rivers of water, he turneth it whithersoever
he will" (#Pr 21:1). Like all other kings, Pharaoh's heart was in the hand of
the Lord; and God had both the right and the power to turn it whithersoever he
pleased. And it pleased him to turn it against
all good. God determined to hinder Pharaoh from granting his request through
Moses to let Israel go, until he had fully prepared him for his final
overthrow, and because nothing short of this would fully fit him, God hardened his heart.
Finally, it is worthy of careful consideration to note how the vindication of God in his dealings with
Pharaoh has been fully attested. Most remarkable it is to discover that we have
Pharaoh's own testimony in favour of God and against himself! In #Ex 9:15,16 we learn
how God had told Pharaoh for what purpose he had raised him up, and in #Ex 9:27 we are told
that Pharaoh said, "I have sinned this time: the Lord is righteous, and I and my people are wicked." Mark
that this was said by Pharaoh after
he knew that God had raised him up in order to "cut him off", after
his severe judgments had been sent upon him, after he had hardened his own
heart. By this time Pharaoh was fairly ripened for judgment, and fully prepared
to decide whether God had injured him, or whether he had sought to injure God;
and he fully acknowledges that he had "sinned" and that God was
"righteous". Again; we have the witness of Moses who was fully
acquainted with God's conduct toward Pharaoh. He had heard at the beginning
what was God's design in connection with Pharaoh; He had witnessed God's
dealings with him; he had observed his "long sufferance" toward this
vessel of wrath fitted to destruction; and at last he had beheld him cut off in
Divine judgment at the Red Sea. How then was Moses impressed? Does he raise the
cry of injustice? Does he dare to charge God with unrighteousness? Far from it.
Instead, he says, "Who is like unto thee, O Lord, among the gods? Who is
like thee, glorious, in holiness, fearful
in praises, doing wonders!" (#Ex 15:11).
Was Moses moved by a vindictive
spirit as he saw Israel's arch enemy "cut off" by the waters of the
Red Sea? Surely not. But to remove forever all doubt upon this score, it
remains to be pointed out how that saints
in Heaven, after they have
witnessed the sore judgments of God, join in singing "the song of Moses the servant of God, and the song
of the Lamb saying, Great and marvellous are thy works, Lord God Almighty; just and true are thy ways, thou King of
Nations" (#Re 15:3). here then is the climax, and the full and final vindication of
God's dealings with Pharaoh. Saints in heaven join in singing the song of
Moses, in which that servant of God celebrated Jehovah's praise in overthrowing
Pharaoh and his hosts, declaring that in so acting God was not unrighteous but just and
true. We must believe, therefore, that the Judge of all the earth did right
in creating and destroying this vessel of wrath, Pharaoh.
The case of Pharaoh establishes
the principle and illustrates the doctrine of Reprobation. If God actually
reprobated Pharaoh, we may justly conclude that he reprobates all others whom
he did not predestinate to be conformed to the image of his Son. This inference
the apostle Paul manifestly draws from the fate of Pharaoh, for in #Ro 9:1-33, after
referring to God's purpose in raising up Pharaoh, he continues, "therefore". The case of
Pharaoh is introduced to prove the doctrine of Reprobation as the counterpart
of the doctrine of Election.
In conclusion, we would say that in forming Pharaoh God displayed
neither justice nor injustice, but only his bare sovereignty. As the potter is
sovereign in forming vessels, so God is sovereign in forming moral agents.
#Ro 9:18. "Therefore hath he
mercy on whom he will have mercy, and
whom he will he hardeneth". The "therefore" announces the
general conclusion which the apostle draws from all he had said in the three
preceding verses in denying that God was unrighteous in loving Jacob and hating
Esau, and specifically it applies the principle exemplified in God's dealings
with Pharaoh. It traces everything back to the sovereign will of the Creator.
He loves one and hates another, he exercises mercy toward some and hardens
others, without reference to anything save his own sovereign will.
That which is most repellant to the carnal mind in the above verse
is the reference to hardening--"Whom
he will he hardeneth"-- and it is just here that so many commentators and
expositors have adulterated the truth. The most common view is that the apostle
is speaking of nothing more than judicial
hardening, i.e., a forsaking by God because these subjects of his
displeasure had first rejected his
truth and forsaken him. Those who contend for this interpretation appeal to
such scriptures as #Ro 1:19-26--God gave them up, that is (see context) those who knew God yet
glorified him not as God (#Ro 1:21). Appeal is also made to #2Th 2:10-12. But it is
to be noted that the word "harden" does not occur in either of these passages. But further, we submit
that #Ro 9:18 has no reference whatever to judicial
"hardening". The apostle is not there speaking of those who had
already turned their backs on God's truth, but instead, he is dealing with God's sovereignty, God's sovereignty as
seen not only in showing mercy to whom he
wills, but also in hardening whom he
pleases. The exact words are "Whom he
will"--not "all who have rejected his truth"--"he
hardeneth", and this, coming immediately after the mention of Pharaoh,
clearly fixes their meaning. The case of Pharaoh is plain enough, though man by
his glosses has done his best to hide the truth.
(#Ro 9:18). "Therefore hath he
mercy on whom he will have mercy, and
whom he will he hardeneth". This affirmation of God's sovereign
"hardening" of sinners' hearts--in contradistinction from judicial
hardening--is not alone. Mark the language of #Joh 12:37-40, "But
though he had done so many miracles before them, yet they believed not on him:
that the saying of Isaiah the prophet might be fulfilled, which he spake, Lord,
who hath believed our report? and to whom hath the arm of the Lord been
revealed? Therefore they could not
believe (why?), because that Isaiah said again, he hath blinded their eyes, and hardened their hearts (why? Because they had refused to believe on
Christ? This is the popular belief, but mark the answer of Scripture) that they should not see with their
eyes, nor understand with their heart, and be converted, and I should heal
them." Now, reader, it is just a question as to whether or not you will
believe what God has revealed in his Word. It is not a matter of prolonged
searching or profound study, but a childlike spirit which is needed, in order
to understand this doctrine.
(#Ro 9:19). "Thou wilt say then
unto me, Why doth he yet find fault?
For who hath resisted his will?" Is not this the very objection which
is urged today? The force of the apostle's questions here seems to be this:
Since everything is dependent on God's will, which is irreversible, and since
this will of God, according to which he can do everything as sovereign--since
he can have mercy on whom he wills to have mercy, and can refuse mercy and
inflict punishment on whom he chooses to do so--why does he not will to have
mercy on all, so as to make them obedient, and thus put finding of fault out of
court? Now it should be particularly noted that the apostle does not repudiate
the ground on which the objection rests. He does not say God does not find fault. Nor does he say, Men may resist his will. Furthermore, he
does not explain away the objection by saying: You have altogether misapprehended
my meaning when I said "Whom he wills he treats kindly, and whom he wills
he treats severely". But he says, "`first, this is an objection you
have no right to make'; and then,
`This is an objection you have no reason to make'" (see Dr. Brown). The
objection was utterly inadmissible, for it was a replying against God. It was to complain about, argue against, what God had done!
(#Ro 9:19). "Thou wilt say then
unto me, Why, doth he yet find fault?
For who hath resisted his will?" The language which the apostle here
puts into the mouth of the objector is so plain and pointed, that
misunderstanding ought to be impossible. Why doth he yet find fault? Now, reader, what can these words mean? Formulate your own
reply before considering ours. Can the force of the apostle's question be any
other than this: If it is true that God has "mercy" on whom
he wills, and also "hardens" whom
he wills, then what becomes of human responsibility? In such a case men are
nothing better than puppets, and if
this be true then it would be unjust
for God to "find fault" with his helpless creatures. Mark the word
"then"--thou wilt say then
unto me--he states the (false) inference
or conclusion which the objector
draws from what the apostle had been saying. And mark, my reader, the apostle
readily saw the doctrine he had formulated would
raise this very objection, and unless
what we have written throughout this
book provokes, in some at least, (all
whose carnal minds are not subdued by divine grace) the same objection, then it must be either because we have not
presented the doctrine which is set forth in #Ro 9:1-33, or else
because human nature has changed
since the apostle's day. Consider now the remainder of the verse (#Ro 9:19). The
apostle repeats the same objection in a slightly different
form--repeats it so that his meaning may not be missunderstood-- namely, "For who hath resisted his
will?" It is clear then that the subject under immediate discussion
relates to God's "will", i.e., his sovereign ways, which confirms what we have said above upon (#Ro 9:17,18), where we
contended that it is not judicial
hardening which is in view (that is, hardening because of previous rejection of
the truth), but sovereign
"hardening", that is, the "hardening" of a fallen and
sinful creature for no other reason than that which inheres in the sovereign
will of God. And hence the question, "Who hath resisted his will?" What then does the apostle
say in reply to these objections?
(#Ro 9:20). "Nay but, O
man, who art thou that repliest against God?
Shall the thing formed say to him that formed it, Why hast thou made me thus?" The apostle, then,
did not say the objection was pointless and groundless, instead, he rebukes the
objector for his impiety. He reminds
him that he is merely a "man", a creature, and that as such it is
most unseemly and impertinent for him
to "reply (argue, or reason) against God". Furthermore, he reminds
him that he is nothing more than a "thing formed", and therefore, it
is madness and blasphemy to rise up against the former himself. Ere leaving
this verse it should be pointed out that its closing words, "Why hast thou
made me thus" help us to
determine, unmistakably, the precise subject under discussion. In the light of
the immediate context what can be the force of the "thus"? What, but
as in the case of Esau, why hast thou made me an object of "hatred"?
What, but as in the case of Pharaoh, Why hast thou made me simply to
"harden" me? What other meaning can,
fairly, be assigned to it?
It is highly important to keep clearly before us that the
apostle's object throughout this passage is to treat of God's sovereignty in
dealing with, on the one hand, those whom he loves--vessels unto honour and
vessels of mercy, and also, on the other hand, with those whom he "hates"
and "hardens"--vessels unto dishonour and vessels of wrath.
(#Ro 9:21-23). "Hath not the potter
power over the clay, of the same
lump, to make one vessel unto honour, and another unto dishonour? What if God, willing to show his wrath, and
to make his power known, endured with
much longsuffering the vessels of wrath fitted to destruction: And that he might make known the riches of his glory on
the vessels of mercy, which he had afore
prepared unto glory." In these verses the apostle furnishes a full and
final reply to the objections raised in (#Ro 9:19). First, he
asks, "Hath not the potter power over the clay?" etc. It is to be
noted the word here translated "power" is a different one in the
Greek from the one rendered "power" in (#Ro 9:22) where it
can only signify his might; but here
in (#Ro 9:21), the power spoken of must refer to the Creator's rights or sovereign prerogatives; that this is so, appears from the fact that the same Greek word is employed in #Joh 1:12--"As
many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of
God"--which, as is well known, means the right or privilege to become the
sons of God. The R.V. employs "right" both in #Joh 1:12 and #Ro 9:21.
(#Ro 9:21). "Hath not the potter
power over the clay of the same lump,
to make one vessel unto honour, and another unto dishonour?" That the
"potter" here is God himself is certain from the previous verse,
where the apostle asks "Who art thou that repliest against God?" and then, speaking in the
terms of the figure he was about to use, continues, "Shall the thing formed say to him that formed
it" etc. Some there are who would rob these words of their force by
arguing that while the human potter makes certain vessels to be used for less
honourable purposes than others, nevertheless, they are designed to fill some
useful place. But the apostle does not here say, "Hath not the potter
power over the clay of the same lump, to make one vessel unto an honourable use
and another to a less honourable use", but he speaks of some
"vessels" being made "unto dishonour."
It is true, of course, that God's wisdom
will yet be fully vindicated, in as much as the destruction of the reprobate will promote his glory--in what way the
next verse tells us.
Ere passing to the next verse let us summarize the teaching of
this and the two previous ones. In (#Ro 9:19) two
questions are asked, "Thou wilt say then unto me, Why doth he yet find
fault? For who hath resisted his will?" To those questions a threefold
answer is returned. First, in (#Ro 9:20) the apostle denies the creature
the right to sit in judgment upon the ways of the Creator--"Nay, but, O
man who art thou that repliest against God? Shall the thing formed say to him
that formed it, Why hast Thou made me thus?" The apostle insists that the
rectitude of God's will must not be
questioned. Whatever he does must be right. Second, in (#Ro 9:21) the
apostle declares that the Creator has the right to dispose of his creatures as
he sees fit--"Hath not the potter power over the clay, of the same lump,
to make one vessel unto honour, and another unto dishonour?" It should be
carefully noted that the word for "power" here is exousian--an
entirely different word from the one translated "power" in the
following verse ("to make known his power"), where it is dunamin. In
the words "Hath not the potter power over the clay?" it must be God's
power justly exercised, which is in
view--the exercise of God's rights consistently
with his justice,--because the
mere assertion of his omnipotency would be no such answer as God would return
to the questions asked in (#Ro 9:19). Third, in (#Ro 9:22,23), the
apostle gives the reasons why God
proceeds differently with one of his creatures from another: on the one hand,
it is to "shew his wrath" and to "make his power known"; on
the other hand, it is to "make known the riches of his glory."
"Hath not the potter power over the clay of the same lump, to
make one vessel unto honour, and another unto dishonour?" Certainly God
has the right to do this because he is the Creator. Does he exercise this right? Yes, as #Ro 9:13,17 clearly
show us--"For this same purpose have
I raised thee (Pharaoh) up".
(#Ro 9:22). "What if God,
willing to show his wrath, and to make
his power known, endured with much longsuffering the vessels of wrath fitted to destruction". Here
the apostle tells us in the second place, why
God acts thus, i.e., differently with different ones--having mercy on some and
hardening others, making one vessel unto honour and another unto dishonour.
Observe, that here in (#Ro 9:22) the apostle first mentions "vessels of wrath", before
he refers in (#Ro 9:23) to the "vessels of mercy". Why is this? The answer to
this question is of first importance: we reply, Because it is the "vessels
of wrath" who are the subjects
in view before the objector in (#Ro 9:19). Two
reasons are given why God makes some
"vessels unto dishonour": first, to "show his wrath", and
secondly "to make his power known"--both of which were exemplified in
the case of Pharaoh.
One point in the above verse requires separate
consideration--"Vessels of wrath fitted
to destruction." The usual explanation which is given of these words is
that the vessels of wrath fit themselves
to destruction, that is, fit themselves by virtue of their wickedness; and it
is argued that there is no need for God to "fit them to destruction",
because they are already fitted by
their own depravity, and that this must
be the real meaning of this expression. Now if by "destruction" we
understand punishment, it is
perfectly true that the non-elect do
"fit themselves", for everyone will be judged "according to his
works"; and further, we freely grant that subjectively the non-elect do
fit themselves for destruction. But the point to be decided is, Is this what the apostle is here referring
to? And, without hesitation, we reply it is not. Go back to #Ro 9:11-13: did Esau fit himself to be an object of God's
hatred, or was he not such before he
was born? Again; did Pharaoh fit himself
for destruction, or did not God harden his heart before the plagues were sent upon Egypt?--see #Ex 4:21!
#Ro 9:22 is clearly a continuation in thought of (#Ro 9:21) and #Ro 9:21 is part of
the apostle's reply to the questions raised in #Ro 9:20: therefore,
to fairly follow out the figure, it must
be God himself who "fits" unto destruction the vessels of wrath.
Should it be asked how God does this,
the answer, necessarily, is, objectively,--he
fits the non-elect unto destruction by his fore-ordinating decrees. Should it
be asked why God does this, the
answer must be, to promote his own glory, i.e., the glory of his justice, power
and wrath. "The sum of the apostle's answer here is, that the grand object
of God, both in the election and the reprobation of men, is that which is paramount
to all things else in the creation of men, namely, his own glory" (Robert
Haldane).
(#Ro 9:23). "And that he
might make known the riches of his glory on the vessels of mercy, which he had afore prepared unto glory."
The only point in this verse which demands attention is the fact that the
"vessels of mercy" are here said to be "afore prepared unto glory". Many have pointed out that
the previous verse does not say the vessels of wrath were afore prepared unto destruction, and from this omission they have
concluded that we must understand the reference there to the non-elect fitting themselves in time, rather than
God ordaining them for destruction from all eternity. But this conclusion by no
means follows. We need to look back to #Ro
9:21 and note the figure which is there
employed. "Clay" is inanimate
matter, corrupt, decomposed, and therefore a fit substance to represent fallen
humanity. As then the apostle is contemplating God's sovereign dealings with
humanity in view of the Fall, he does not say the vessels of wrath were "afore"
prepared unto destruction, for the obvious and sufficient reason that, it was
not until after the Fall that they
became (in themselves) what is here
symbolized by the "clay". All that is necessary to refute the
erroneous conclusion referred to above, is to point out that what is said of
the vessels of wrath is not that they are fit
for destruction (which is the word that would have been used if the
reference had been to them fitting
themselves by their own wickedness), but fitted to destruction; which, in the light of the whole context,
must mean a sovereign ordination to
destruction by the Creator. We quote here the pointed words of Calvin on this
passage--"There are vessels prepared for destruction, that is, given up
and appointed to destruction; they are also vessels of wrath, that is, made and formed for this end, that they may be examples of God's vengeance and
displeasure. Though in the second clause the apostle asserts more expressly,
that it is God who prepared the elect for glory, as he had simply said before
that the reprobate are vessels prepared for destruction, there is yet no doubt
but that the preparation of both is connected with the secret counsel of God.
Paul might have otherwise said, that the reprobate gave up or cast themselves
into destruction, but he intimates here, that before they are born they are
destined to their lot". With this we are in hearty accord. #Ro 9:29 does not say the vessels of wrath fitted themselves, nor does it say they
are fit for destruction, instead, it declares they are "fitted to destruction", and the context
shows plainly it is God who thus
"fits" them--objectively by his eternal decrees.
Though #Ro 9:1-33 contains the fullest
setting forth of the doctrine of Reprobation, there are still other passages
which refer to it, one or two more of which we will now briefly notice:--
"What then? That which Israel seeketh for, that he obtained
not, but the election obtained it, and the rest were hardened" (#Ro 11:7 R.V.). Here
we have two distinct and clearly defined classes which are set in sharp
antithesis: the "election" and "the rest"; the one
"obtained", the other is "hardened". On this verse we quote
from the comments of John Bunyan of immortal memory:--"These are solemn
words: they sever between men and men--the election and the rest, the chosen
and the left, the embraced and the refused. By 'rest' here must needs be
understood those not elect, because
set the one in opposition to the other, and if not elect, whom then but
reprobate?"
Writing to the saints at Thessalonica the apostle declared,
"For God hath not appointed us to wrath, but to obtain salvation by our
Lord Jesus Christ" (#1Th 5:9). Now surely it is patent to any impartial mind that this
statement is quite pointless if God has not "appointed" any to wrath. To say that God "hath
not appointed us to wrath",
clearly implies that there are some
whom he has "appointed to
wrath", and were it not that the minds of so many professing Christians
are so blinded by prejudice, they could not fail to clearly see this.
"A Stone of stumbling, and a Rock or offence, even to them
who stumble at the Word, being disobedient, whereunto also they were appointed" (#1Pe 2:8). The
whereunto manifestly points back to the stumbling at the Word, and their
disobedience. Here, then, God expressly affirms that there are some who have been "appointed" (it is the same Greek
word as in #1Th 5:9) unto disobedience. Our business is not to reason about it, but to bow
to Holy Scripture. Our first duty is not to understand,
but to believe what God has said.
"But these, as natural brute beasts, made to be taken and destroyed, speak evil of the things that they
understand not; and shall utterly perish in their own corruption" (#2Pe 2:12). Here,
again, every effort is made to escape the plain teaching of this solemn
passage. We are told that it is the "brute beasts" who are "made
to be taken and destroyed", and not the persons here likened to them. All
that is needed to refute such sophistry is to inquire wherein lies the point of analogy
between the "these" (men) and the "brute beasts"? What is
the force of the "as"--but "these as brute beasts"?
Clearly, it is that "these" men as brute beasts, are the ones who,
like animals, are "made to be taken and destroyed": the closing words
confirming this by reiterating the
same sentiment--"and shall utterly perish in their own corruption."
"For there are certain men crept in unawares, who were before
of old ordained to this condemnation;
ungodly men, turning the grace of our God into lasciviousness, and denying the
only Lord God, and our Lord Jesus Christ" (#Jude 1:4). Attempts
have been made to escape the obvious force of this verse by substituting a
different translation. The R.V. gives: "But there are certain men crept in
privily, even they who were of old written
of beforehand unto this condemnation." But this altered rendering by
no means gets rid of that which is so distasteful to our sensibilities. The
question arises, Where were these
"of old written of
beforehand"? Certainly not in the Old Testament, for nowhere is there any
reference there to wicked men
creeping into Christian assemblies. If "written of" be the best translation of
"prographo", the reference can only be to the book of the divine decrees. So whichever alternative be
selected there can be no evading the fact that certain men are "before of old" marked out by God "unto condemnation."
"And all that dwell on the earth shall worship him (viz. the
Antichrist), every one whose name hath not
been written from the foundation of the world in the Book of Life of the Lamb
that hath been slain" (#Re 13:8, R.V. compare #Re 17:8). Here,
then, is a positive statement affirming that there are those whose names were
not written in the Book of Life. Because of this they shall render
allegiance to and bow down before the Antichrist.
Here, then, are no less than ten passages which most plainly imply
or expressly teach the fact of reprobation. They affirm that the wicked are
made for the Day of Evil; that God
fashions some vessels unto dishonour;
and by his eternal decree (objectively) fits them unto destruction; that they
are like brute beasts, made to be taken and destroyed, being of old ordained
unto this condemnation. Therefore in the face of these scriptures we
unhesitatingly affirm (after nearly twenty years careful and prayerful study of
the subject) that the Word of God unquestionably teaches both Predestination
and Reprobation, or to use the words of Calvin, "Eternal Election is God's
predestination of some to salvation, and others to destruction".
Having thus stated the doctrine of Reprobation, as it is presented
in Holy Writ, let us now mention one or two important considerations to guard
it against abuse and prevent the reader from making any unwarranted deductions:--
First, the doctrine of Reprobation does not mean that God purposed
to take innocent creatures, make them wicked, and then damn them. Scripture
says, "God hath made man upright, but they have sought out many inventions"
(#Ec
7:29). God has not created sinful
creatures in order to destroy them, for God is not to be charged with the sin
of his creatures. The responsibility and criminality is man's.
God's decree of Reprobation contemplated Adam's race as fallen,
sinful, corrupt, guilty. From it God purposed to save a few as the monuments of
his sovereign grace; the others he determined to destroy as the exemplification
of his justice and severity. In determining to destroy these others, God did
them no wrong. They had already fallen in Adam, their legal representative;
they are therefore born with a sinful nature, and in their sins he leaves them.
Nor can they complain. This is as they
wish; they have no for holiness; they love
darkness rather than light. Where, then, is there any injustice if God
"gives them up to their own hearts' lusts" (#Ps 81:12)!
Second, the doctrine of Reprobation does not
mean God refuses to save those who earnestly seek salvation. The fact is that
the reprobate have no longing for the
Saviour: they see in him no beauty that they should desire him. They will not
come to Christ--why then should God force them to? He turns away none who do come--where then is the injustice of God fore-determining their just doom? None will be punished but for
their iniquities; where then, is the supposed tyrannical cruelty of the Divine
procedure? Remember that God is the Creator of the wicked, not of their
wickedness; he is the Author of their being, but not the Infuser of their sin.
God does
not (as we have been slanderously reported to affirm) compel the wicked to sin,
as the rider spurs on an unwilling horse. God only says in effect that awful
word, "Let them alone" (#Mt 15:14). He needs only to slacken the reins of providential
restraint, and withhold the influence of saving grace, and apostate man will
only too soon and too surely, of his own accord, fall by his iniquities. Thus
the decree of reprobation neither interferes with the bent of man's own fallen
nature, nor serves to render him the less inexcusable.
Third, the decree of Reprobation in no wise conflicts with God's
goodness. Though the non-elect are not the objects of his goodness in the same
way or to the same extent as the elect are, yet are they not wholly excluded
from a participation of it. They enjoy the good things of Providence (temporal
blessings) in common with God's own children, and very often to a higher
degree. But how do they improve them? Does the (temporal) goodness of God lead
them to repent? Nay, verily, they do but
"despise his goodness, and forbearance, and longsuffering, and after
their hardness and impenitency of heart treasure up unto themselves wrath
against the day of wrath" (#Ro 2:4,5). On what
righteous ground, then, can they murmur against not being the objects of his
benevolence in the endless ages yet to come? Moreover, if it did not clash with
God's mercy and kindness to leave the entire body of the fallen angels (#2Pe 2:4) under the
guilt of their apostasy; still less can it clash with the Divine perfections to
leave some of fallen mankind in their sins and punish them for them.
Finally, let us interpose this necessary caution: It is utterly
impossible for any of us, during the present life, to ascertain who are among the reprobate. We must not now so judge any man, no
matter how wicked he may be. The vilest sinner, may, for all we know, be
included in the election of grace and
be one day quickened by the Spirit of grace. Our marching orders are plain, and
woe be unto us if we disregard them--"Preach the Gospel to every creature". When we have done
so our skirts are clear. If men refuse to heed, their blood is on their own
heads; nevertheless "we are unto God a sweet savour of Christ, in them
that are saved, and in them that perish. To the one we are a savour of death
unto death; and to the other we are a savour of life unto life" (#2Co 2:15,16).
We must now consider a number of passages which are often quoted
with the purpose of showing that God has
not fitted certain vessels to destruction or ordained certain ones to
condemnation. First, we cite #Eze 18:31--"Why will ye die, O house of
Israel?" On this passage we cannot
do better than quote from the comments of Augustus Toplady: --"This is a
passage very frequently, but very idly, insisted upon by Arminians, as if it
were a hammer which would at one stroke crush the whole fabric to powder. But
it so happens that the "death" here alluded to is neither spiritual
nor eternal death: as is abundantly evident from the whole tenor of the
chapter. The death intended by the prophet is a political death; a death of national prosperity, tranquillity, and
security. The sense of the question is precisely this: What is it that makes
you in love with captivity, banishment, and civil ruin? Abstinence from the
worship of images might, as a people, exempt you from these calamities, and
once more render you a respectable nation. Are the miseries of public
devastation so alluring as to attract your determined pursuit? Why will ye die?
die as the house of Israel, and considered as a political body? Thus did the prophet
argue the case, at the same time adding--"For I have no pleasure in the
death of him that dieth saith the Lord God, wherefore, turn yourselves, and
live ye." This imports: First, the national captivity of the Jews added
nothing to the happiness of God. Second, if the Jews turned from idolatry, and
flung away their images, they should not die in a foreign, hostile country, but
live peaceably in their own land and enjoy their liberties as an independent
people." To the above we may add: political
death must be what is in view in #Eze
18:31,32 for the simple but sufficient reason that they were already spiritually dead!
#Mt 25:41 is often quoted to show that God has not fitted certain vessels to destruction--"Depart from
me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for the Devil and his
angels." This is, in fact, one of the principal verses relied upon to
disprove the doctrine of Reprobation. But we submit that the emphatic word here
is not "for" but
"Devil." This verse (see context) sets forth the severity of the judgment which awaits the lost. In other words, the
above scripture expresses the awfulness
of the everlasting fire rather than the
subjects of it--if the fire be
"prepared for the Devil and his
angels" then how intolerable it will be! If the place of eternal torment
into which the damned shall be cast is the
same as that in which God's arch
enemy will suffer, how dreadful
must that place be!
Again: if God has chosen only certain ones to salvation, why are
we told that God "now commandeth all men everywhere to repent" (#Ac 17:3)? That God
commandeth "all men" to repent is but the enforcing of his righteous
claims as the moral Governor of the world. How could he do less, seeing that
all men everywhere have sinned against him? Furthermore; that God commandeth
all men everywhere to repent argues the universality of creature
responsibility. But this scripture does not declare that it is God's pleasure
to "give repentance" (#Ac 5:31) to all men
everywhere. That the apostle Paul did not believe God gave repentance to every
soul is clear from his words in #2Ti 2:25--"In
meekness instructing those that oppose themselves; if God peradventure will give them repentance to the acknowledging
of the truth."
Again, we are asked, if God has "ordained" only certain
ones unto eternal life, then why do we read that he "will have all men to be saved, and come to the
knowledge of the truth" (#1Ti 2:4)? The reply is, that the words
"all" and "all men", like the term "world", are
often used in a general and relative sense. Let the reader carefully examine
the following passages: #Mr 1:5; Joh 6:45, 8:2; #Ac 21:28, 22:15; 2Co 3:2 etc., and
he will find full proof of our assertion. #1Ti 2:4 cannot teach that God wills the salvation of all mankind, or
otherwise all mankind would be
saved--"What his soul desireth even
that he doeth" (#Job 23:13)!
Again; we are asked, Does not Scripture declare, again and again,
that God is no "respecter of persons"? We answer, it certainly does,
and God's electing grace proves it.
The seven sons of Jesse, though older and physically superior to David, are
passed by, while the young shepherd boy is exalted to Israel's throne. The
scribes and lawyers pass unnoticed, and ignorant fishermen are chosen to be the
apostles of the Lamb. Divine truth is hidden from the wise and prudent and is
revealed to babes instead. The great majority of the wise and noble are
ignored, while the weak, the base, the despised, are called and saved. Harlots
and publicans are sweetly compelled to come in to the gospel feast, while
self-righteous Pharisees are suffered to perish in their immaculate morality.
Truly, God is "no
respecter" of persons or he would not have saved me.
That the Doctrine of Reprobation is a "hard saying"--to
the carnal mind is readily acknowledged--yet, is it any "harder" than
that of eternal punishment? That it
is clearly taught in Scripture we have sought to demonstrate, and it is not for
us to pick and choose from the truths revealed in God's Word. Let those who are
inclined to receive those doctrines which commend themselves to their judgment, and who reject those
which they cannot fully understand,
remember those scathing words of our Lord's, "O fools, and slow of heart
to believe all that the prophets have
spoken" (#Lu 24:25): fools because slow of heart; slow of heart, not dull of head!
Once more we would avail ourselves of the language of Calvin:
"But, as I have hitherto only recited such things as are delivered without
any obscurity or ambiguity in the Scriptures, let persons who hesitate not to
brand with ignominy those Oracles of Heaven, beware what kind of opposition
they make. For, if they pretend ignorance, with a desire to be commended for
their modesty, what greater instance of pride can be conceived, than to oppose
one little word to the authority of God! as, `It appears otherwise to me,' or
`I would rather not meddle with this subject.' But if they openly censure, what
will they gain by their puny attempts against heaven? Their petulance, indeed,
is no novelty; for in all ages there have
been impious and profane men, who have virulently
opposed this doctrine. But they shall feel the truth of what the Spirit
long ago declared by the mouth of David, that God `is clear when he judgeth' (#Ps 51:4). David
obliquely hints at the madness of men who display such excessive presumption
amidst their insignificance, as not only to dispute against God, but to
arrogate to themselves the power of condemning him. In the meantime, he briefly
suggests, that God is unaffected by all the blasphemies which they discharge
against heaven, but that he dissipates the mists of calumny, and illustriously
displays his righteousness; our faith, also, being founded on the Divine Word,
and therefore, superior to all the world, from its exaltation looks down with
contempt upon those mists" (John Calvin).
In closing this chapter we propose to quote from
the writings of some of the standard theologians since the days of the
Reformation, not that we would buttress our own statements by an appeal to
human authority, however venerable or ancient, but in order to show that what
we have advanced in these pages is no novelty of the twentieth century, no
heresy of the "latter days" but, instead, a doctrine which has been
definitely formulated and commonly taught by many of the most pious and
scholarly students of Holy Writ.
"Predestination we call the decree of God, by which he has
determined in himself, what he would have to become of every individual of
mankind. For they are not all created with a similar destiny: but eternal life
is foreordained for some, and eternal damnation for others. Every man,
therefore, being created for one or the other of these ends, we say, he is
predestinated either to life or to death"--from John Calvin's
"Institutes" (1536 A.D.) Book III, Chapter XXI entitled "Eternal
Election, or God's Predestination of Some to Salvation and of Others to
Destruction."
We ask
our readers to mark well the above language. A perusal of it should show that
what the present writer has advanced in this chapter is not "Hyper-Calvinism" but real Calvinism, pure and simple. Our purpose in making this remark
is to show that those who, not acquainted with Calvin's writings, in their ignorance condemn as ultra-Calvanism
that which is simply a reiteration of what Calvin himself taught--a reiteration
because that prince of theologians as well as his humble debtor have both found
this doctrine in the Word of God itself.
Martin
Luther is his most excellent work "De Servo Arbitrio" (Free Will a
Slave), wrote: "All things whatsoever arise from, and depend upon, the
divine appointments, whereby it was preordained who should receive the Word of
Life, and who should disbelieve it, who should be delivered from their sins,
and who should be hardened in them, who should be justified and who should be
condemned. This is the very truth which razes the doctrine of free will from
its foundations, to wit, that God's eternal love of some men and hatred of
others is immutable and cannot be reversed."
John
Fox, whose Book of Martyrs was once the best known work in the English language
(alas that it is not so today, when Roman Catholicism is sweeping upon us like
a great destructive tidal wave!), wrote:-- "Predestination is the eternal
decreement of God, purposed before in himself, what should befall all men,
either to salvation, or damnation".
The
"Larger Westminster Catechism" (1688)--adopted by the General
Assembly of the Presbyterian Church--declares, "God, by an eternal and
immutable decree, out of his mere love, for the praise of his glorious grace,
to be manifested in due time, hath elected some angels to glory, and in Christ
hath chosen some men to eternal life, and the means thereof; and also,
according to his sovereign power, and the unsearchable counsel of his own will
(whereby he extendeth or withholdeth favour as he pleases), hath passed by, and
foreordained the rest to dishonour and wrath, to for their sin inflicted, to the
praise of the glory of his justice".
John
Bunyan, author of "The Pilgrim's Progress", wrote a whole volume on
"Reprobation". From it we make one brief extract:--"Reprobation
is before the person cometh into the world, or hath done good or evil. This is
evidenced by #Ro 9:11.
Here you find twain in their mother's womb, and both receiving their destiny,
not only before they had done good or
evil, but before they were in a capacity to do it, they being yet unborn--their
destiny, I say, the one unto, the other not unto the blessing of eternal life;
the one elect, the other reprobate; the one chosen, the other refused". In
his "Sighs from Hell", John Bunyan also wrote: "They that do
continue to reject and slight the Word of God are such, for the most part, as
are ordained to be damned".
Commenting upon #Ro 9:22, "What if God willing to show
his wrath, and to make his power known, endured with much longsuffering the
vessels of wrath fitted to destruction" Jonathan Edwards (Vol. 4, p.
306--1743 A.D.) says, "How awful doth the majesty of God appear in the
dreadfulness of his anger! This we may learn to be one end of the damnation of
the wicked."
Augustus Toplady, author of "Rock of Ages" and other
sublime hymns, wrote: "God, from all eternity decreed to leave some of
Adam's fallen posterity in their sins, and to exclude them from the participation
of Christ and his benefits". And again; "We, with the Scriptures,
assert: That there is a predestination of some particular persons to life, for
the praise of the glory of divine grace; and also a predestination of other
particular persons to death for the
glory of divine justice--which death of punishment they shall inevitably
undergo, and that justly, on account of their sins".
George Whitefield, that stalwart of the eighteenth century, used
by God in blessing to so many, wrote: "Without doubt, the doctrine of
election and reprobation must stand or fall together ... I frankly acknowledge
I believe the doctrine of Reprobation, that God intends to give saving grace,
through Jesus Christ, only to a certain number; and that the rest of mankind,
after the fall of Adam, being justly left
of God to continue in sin, will
at last suffer that eternal death which is its proper wages".
"Fitted to destruction" (#Ro 9:22). After
declaring this phrase admits of two interpretations, Dr. Hodge--perhaps the
best known and most widely read commentator on Romans--says, "The other
interpretation assumes that the reference is to God and that the Greek word for
'fitted' has its full participle force; prepared
(by God) for destruction." This, says Dr. Hodge, "Is adopted not only
by the majority of Augustinians, but also by many Lutherans."
Were it necessary we are prepared to give quotations from the
writings of Wycliffe, Huss, Ridley, Hooper, Cranmer, Ussher, John Trapp, Thomas
Goodwin, Thomas Manton (Chaplain to Cromwell), John Owen, Witsius, John Gill
(predecessor of Spurgeon), and a host of others. We mention this simply to show
that many of the most eminent saints in bygone days, the men most widely used
of God, held and taught this doctrine which is so bitterly hated in these last
days, when men will no longer "endure sound doctrine"; hated by men
of lofty pretensions, but who, notwithstanding their boasted orthodoxy and much
advertised piety, are not worthy to unfasten the shoes of the faithful and
fearless servants of God of other days.
"O the depth of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge
of God! How unsearchable are his judgments and his ways past finding out! For
who hath known the mind of the Lord? or who hath been his counsellor? or who hath
first given to him, and it shall be recompensed unto him again? For of him, and
through him, and to him, are all things: to whom be glory forever, Amen" (#Ro 11:33-36). {a}
{a} "Of
him"---his will is the origin of all existence; "through" or
"by him"--he is the Creator and Controller of all; "to
Him"---all things promote his glory in their final end.
Chapter 6 --
The Sovereignty Of God In Operation
"For of him, and through him, and to him, are all things: to whom be glory for
ever. Amen" (#Ro 11:36).
Has God foreordained everything that comes to pass? Has he decreed
that what is, was to have been? In the final analysis this is only another way
of asking, Is God now governing the
world and everyone and everything in it? If God is governing the world, then is he governing it according to a
definite purpose, or aimlessly and at random? If he is governing it according
to some purpose, then when was that purpose made? Is God continually changing
his purpose and making a new one every day, or was his purpose formed from the
beginning? Are God's actions, like ours, regulated by the change of
circumstances, or are they the outcome of his eternal purpose? If God formed a
purpose before man was created, then is that purpose going to be executed
according to his original designs and is he now working toward that end? What
saith the Scriptures? They declare God is one "who worketh all things after the counsel of his own
will" (#Eph 1:11).
Few who read this book are likely to call into question the statement
that God knows and foreknows all things,
but perhaps many would hesitate to go further than this. Yet is it not
self-evident that if God foreknows
all things, he has also foreordained
all things? Is it not clear that God foreknows what will be because he has decreed what shall be? God's foreknowledge is
not the cause of events, rather are
events the effects of his eternal purpose. When God has decreed a thing shall be, he knows it will be. In the nature of things there
cannot be anything known as what shall be, unless it is certain to be, and there is nothing certain to be unless God has ordained it shall be. Take the
crucifixion as an illustration. On this point the teaching of Scripture is as
clear as a sunbeam. Christ as the Lamb whose blood was to be shed, was
"foreordained before the foundation of the world" (#1Pe 1:20). Having
then "ordained" the slaying of the Lamb, God knew he would be "led to the slaughter", and therefore
made it known accordingly through Isaiah the prophet. The Lord Jesus was not
"delivered" up by God foreknowing it before it took place, but by his
fixed counsel and foreordination (#Ac 2:23).
Foreknowledge of future events then is founded upon God's decrees, hence if God
foreknows everything that is to be, it is because he has determined in himself
from all eternity everything which will be--"Known unto God are all his
works from the beginning of the world" (#Ac 15:18), which
shows that God has a plan, that God
did not begin his work at random or without a knowledge of how his plan would
succeed.
God created all things. This truth no one, who bows to the
testimony of Holy Writ, will question; nor would any such be prepared to argue
that the work of creation was an accidental
work. God first formed the purpose to create, and then put forth the creative
act in fulfilment of that purpose. All real Christians will readily adopt the
words of the Psalmist and say, "O Lord, how manifold are thy works! in wisdom hast thou made them all."
Will any who endorse what we have just said, deny that God purposed to govern the world which he created?
Surely the creation of the world was not the
end of God's purpose concerning it. Surely he did not determine simply to
create the world and place man in it, and then leave both to their fortunes. It
must be apparent that God has some great end or ends in view, worthy of his
infinite perfections, and that he is now governing the world so as to
accomplish these ends--"The counsel of the Lord standeth for ever, the
thoughts of his heart to all generations" (#Ps 33:11).
"Remember the former things of old: for I am God, and there
is none else; I am God, and there is none like me, declaring the end from the
beginning, and from ancient times the things that are not yet done, saying, my
counsel shall stand, and I will do all my pleasure" (#Isa 46:9,10). Many
other passages might be adduced to show that God has many counsels concerning
this world and concerning man, and that all these counsels will most surely be
realized. It is only when they are thus regarded that we can intelligently
appreciate the prophecies of Scripture. In prophecy the mighty God has
condescended to take us into the secret chamber of his eternal counsels, and
make known to us what he has purposed to do in the future. The hundreds of
prophecies which are found in the Old and New Testaments are not so much
predictions of what will come to
pass, as they are revelations to us of
what God has purposed SHALL come to
pass. Do we know from prophecy that this present age, like all preceding
ones, is to end with a full demonstration of man's failure; do we know that
there is to be a universal turning away from the truth, a general apostasy; do
we know that the Antichrist is to be manifested, and that he will succeed in
deceiving the whole world; do we know that Antichrist's career will be cut
short, and an end made of man's miserable attempts to govern himself, by the
return of God's Son; then it is all because these and a hundred other things
are included among God's eternal decrees, now made known to us in the sure Word
of Prophecy, and because it is infallibly certain that all God has purposed "must
shortly come to pass" (#Re 1:1).
What then was the great purpose for which this world and the human
race were created? The answer of Scripture is, "The Lord hath made all
things for himself" (#Pr 16:4). And
again, "Thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created" (#Re 4:11). The great
end of creation was the manifestation of God's glory. The heavens declare the
glory of God and the firmament sheweth his handiwork; but it was by man, originally made in his own image
and likeness, that God designed chiefly to manifest his glory. But how was the
great Creator to be glorified by man? Before his creation, God foresaw the fall
of Adam and the consequent ruin of his race, therefore he could not have
designed that man should glorify him by continuing in a state of innocency.
Accordingly, we are taught that Christ was "foreordained before the
foundation of the world" to be the Saviour of fallen men. The redemption
of sinners by Christ was no mere after thought of God: it was no expediency to
meet an unlooked for calamity. No; it was a divine provision, and, therefore when man fell, he found mercy walking
hand in hand with justice.
From all eternity God designed that our world should be the stage
on which he would display his manifold grace and wisdom, in the redemption of
lost sinners: "To the intent that now unto the principalities and powers
in heavenly places might be known by the Church the manifold wisdom of God, according to the eternal purpose which
he purposed in Christ Jesus our Lord" (#Eph 3:11). For the
accomplishment of this glorious design God has governed the world from the
beginning, and will continue it to the end. It has been well said, "We can
never understand the providence of God over our world, unless we regard it as a
complicated machine having ten thousand parts, directed in all its operations
to one glorious end--the display of the
manifold wisdom of God in the
salvation of the Church", i.e., the "called out" ones.
Everything else down here is subordinated to this central purpose. It was the
apprehension of this basic truth that the apostle, moved by the Holy Spirit,
was led to write, "Wherefore I endure all things for the elects sake, that
they may also obtain the salvation
which is in Christ Jesus with eternal glory" (#2Ti 2:10). What we
would now contemplate is the operation
of God's sovereignty in the government of this world.
In regard to the operation of God's government over the material world little needs now be said.
In previous chapters we have shown that inanimate matter and all irrational
creatures are absolutely subject to their Creator's pleasure. While we freely
admit that the material world appears to be governed by laws that are stable
and more or less uniform in their operations, yet Scripture, history, and
observation, compel us to recognise the fact that God suspends these laws and
acts apart from them whenever it pleaseth him to do so. In sending his
blessings or judgments upon his creatures he may cause the sun itself to stand
still, and the stars in their courses to fight for his people (#Jud 5:20); he may
send or withhold "the early and the latter rains" according to the
dictates of his own infinite wisdom; he may smite with plague or bless with
health; in short, being God, being absolute Sovereign, he is bound and tied by
no laws of Nature, but governs the material world as seemeth him best.
But what of God's government of the human family? What does Scripture reveal in regard to the modus operandi of the operations of
his governmental administration over mankind? To what extent and by what
influences does God control the sons of men? We shall divide our answer to this
question into two parts and consider first God's method of dealing with the righteous,
his elect; and then his method of dealing with the wicked.
God's Method Of Dealing With The
Righteous:
1. God exerts upon his own
elect a quickening influence or power.
By nature they are spiritually dead, dead in trespasses and sins,
and their first need is spiritual life, for "Except a man be born again, he cannot
see the kingdom of God" (#Joh 3:3). In the new birth God brings us
from death unto life (#Joh 5:24). he imparts to us his own nature (#2Pe 1:4). He
delivers us from the power of darkness and translates us into the kingdom of
his dear Son (#Col 1:13). Now, manifestly, we could not do this ourselves, for we were
"without strength" (#Ro 5:6), hence it is written, "we are
his workmanship created in Christ
Jesus" (#Eph 2:10).
In the new birth we are made partakers of the divine nature: a
principle, a "seed", a life, is communicated to us which is
"born of the Spirit", and therefore "is spirit"; is born of the Holy Spirit, and therefore is holy. Apart from this divine and holy
nature which is imparted to us at the new birth, it is utterly impossible for
any man to generate a spiritual impulse, form a spiritual concept, think a
spiritual thought, understand spiritual things, still less engage in spiritual
works. "Without holiness no man shall see the Lord", but the natural
man has no desire for holiness, and the provision that God has made he does not
want. Will then a man pray for, seek for, strive after, that which he dislikes?
Surely not. If then a man does
"follow after" that which by nature he cordially dislikes, if he does
now love the one he once hated, it is because a miraculous change has taken
place within him; a power outside of himself has operated upon him, a nature
entirely different from his old one has been imparted to him, and hence it is
written, "Therefore if any man be in Christ, he is a new creation: old
things are passed away, behold all things are become new" (#2Co 5:17). Such an
one as we have just described has passed from death unto life, has been turned
from darkness to light, and from the power of Satan unto God (#Ac 26:18). In no
other way can the great change be accounted for.
The new birth is very, very much more than simply shedding a few
tears due to a temporary remorse over sin. It is far more than changing our
course of life, the leaving off of bad habits and the substituting of good
ones. It is something different from the mere cherishing and practising of
noble ideals. It goes infinitely deeper than coming forward to take some
popular evangelist by the hand, signing a pledge card, or "joining the
church." The new birth is no mere turning over a new leaf, but is the
inception and reception of a new life. It is no mere reformation but a complete
transformation. In short, the new birth is a miracle, the result of the
supernatural operation of God. It is radical, revolutionary, lasting.
Here then is the first thing, in time, which God does in his own
elect. He lays hold of those who are spiritually dead and quickens them into
newness of life. He takes up one who was shapen in iniquity and conceived in
sin, and conforms him to the image of his Son. He seizes a captive of the Devil
and makes him a member of the household of faith. He picks up a beggar and
makes him joint-heir with Christ. He comes to one who is full of enmity against
him, and gives him a new heart that is full of love for him. He stoops to one
who by nature is a rebel, and works in him both to will and to do of his good
pleasure. By his irresistible power he transforms a sinner into a saint, an
enemy into a friend, a slave of the Devil into a child of God. Surely then we
are moved to say,
"When all thy mercies O my God
My wondering soul surveys,
Transported with the view I'm lost
In wonder, love and praise."
2. God exerts upon his own elect an energising influence or power.
The apostle prayed to God for the Ephesian saints that the eyes of
their understanding might be enlightened in order that, among other things,
they might know "what is the exceeding greatness of his power to us-ward who believe" (#Eph 1:18), and that
they might be "strengthened with might by his Spirit in the inner
man" (#Eph 3:16). It is thus that the children of God are enabled to fight the
good fight of faith, and battle with the adverse forces which constantly war
against them. In themselves they have no strength: they are but
"sheep", and sheep are one of the most defenceless animals there is;
but the promise is sure--"He giveth power to the faint, and to them that
have no might he increaseth strength" (#Isa 40:29).
It is this energising power that God exerts upon and within the
righteous which enables them to serve him acceptably. Said the prophet of old,
"But truly I am full of power by the
Spirit of the Lord" (#Mic 3:8). And said our Lord to his
apostles, "Ye shall receive power after that the Holy Spirit is come
upon you" (#Ac 1:8), and thus it proved, for of these same men we read subsequently,
"And with great power gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the
Lord Jesus: and great grace was upon them all" (#Ac 4:33). So it
was, too, with the apostle Paul, "And my speech and my preaching was not
with enticing words of man's wisdom, but in demonstration of the Spirit and of
power" (#1Co 2:4). But the scope of this power is not confined to service, for we
read in #2Pe 1:3, "According as his Divine power hath given unto us all things that pertain unto life and
godliness, through the knowledge of him that hath called us to glory and
virtue." Hence it is that the various graces of the Christian character,
"love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness,
temperance", are ascribed directly to God himself, being denominated
"the fruit of the Spirit" (#Ga 5:22). Compare #2Co 8:16.
3. God exerts upon his own
elect a directing influence or power.
Of old he led his people across the wilderness, and directing
their steps by a pillar of cloud by day and a pillar of fire by night; and
today he still directs his saints, though now from within rather than from without.
"For this God is our God for
ever and ever: he will be our guide
even unto death" (#Ps 48:14), but he "guides" us by working in us both to will and
to do of his good pleasure. That he does so guide us is clear from the words of
the apostle in #Eph 2:10--"For we are his workmanship, created in Christ Jesus unto
good works, which God hath before ordained that we should walk
in them." Thus all ground for boasting is removed, and God gets all
the glory, for with the prophet we have to say, "Lord, thou wilt ordain
peace for us: for thou also hast wrought all our works in us" (#Isa 26:12). How true
then that "A man's heart deviseth his way: but the Lord directeth his steps" (#Pr 16:9)! Compare #Ps 65:4, #Eze 36:27.
4. God exerts upon his own elect a preserving influence or power.
Many are the scriptures which set forth this blessed truth.
"He preserveth the souls of his saints; he delivereth them out of the hand
of the wicked" (#Ps 97:10). "For the Lord loveth judgment, and forsaketh not his
saints; they are preserved for ever:
but the seed of the wicked shall be cut off" (#Ps 37:28). "The
Lord preserveth all them that love
him: but all the wicked will he destroy" (#Ps 145:20). It is
needless to multiply texts or to raise an argument at this point respecting the
believer's responsibility and faithfulness--we can no more
"persevere" without God
preserving us, than we can breathe when God ceases to give us breath; we are "kept by the power of God through
faith unto salvation ready to be revealed in the last time" (#1Pe 1:5). Compare #1Ch 18:6. It remains
for us now to consider,
God's Method of Dealing With The Wicked:
In contemplating God's governmental dealings with the non-elect we
find that he exerts upon them a fourfold influence or power. We adopt the clear
cut divisions suggested by Dr. Rice:
1. God exerts upon the
wicked a restraining influence by
which they are prevented from doing
what they are naturally inclined to do.
A striking example of this is seen in Abimelech king of Gerar.
Abraham came down to Gerar and fearful lest he might be slain on account of his
wife he instructed her to pose as his sister. Regarding her as an unmarried
woman, Abimelech sent and took Sarah unto himself; and then we learn how God
put forth his power to protect her honour--"And God said unto him in a
dream, `Yea, I know that thou didst this in the integrity of thy heart; for I also withheld thee from sinning
against me': therefore suffered I
thee not to touch her" (#Ge 20:6). Had not
God interposed, Abimelech would have grievously wronged Sarah, but the Lord
restrained him and allowed him not to carry out the intentions of his heart.
A similar instance is found in connection with
Joseph and his brethren's treatment of him. Owing to Jacob's partiality for
Joseph, his brethren "hated him", and when they thought they had him
in their power, "they conspired against him to slay him" (#Ge 37:18). But God did not allow them to carry out their evil
designs. First he moved Reuben to deliver him out of their hands, and next he
caused Judah to suggest that Joseph should be sold to the passing Ishmaelites,
who carried him down into Egypt. That it was God who thus restrained them is clear from the words of Joseph
himself, when some years later he made known himself to his brethren: said he,
"So now it was not you that sent me hither, but God" (#Ge 45:8)!
The restraining influence which God exerts upon the wicked was
strikingly exemplified in the person of Balaam, the prophet hired by Balak to
curse the Israelites. One cannot read the inspired narrative without discovering
that, left to himself, Balaam had readily and certainly accepted the offer of
Balak. How evidently God restrained the impulses of his heart is seen from his
own acknowledgment--"How shall I curse, whom God hath not cursed? or how
shall I defy, whom the Lord hath not defied? Behold I have received commandment to bless: and he hath blessed; and I cannot
reverse it" (#Nu 23:8,20).
Not only does God exert a restraining influence upon wicked
individuals, but he does so upon whole peoples as well. A remarkable
illustration of this is found in #Ex 34: 24--"For
I will cast out the nations before thee, and enlarge thy borders: neither shall any man desire thy land, when thou shalt go up
to appear before the Lord thy God thrice in the year." Three times every
male Israelite, at the command of God, left his home and inheritance and
journeyed to Jerusalem to keep the feasts of the Lord; and in the above
scripture we learn he promised them that, while they were at Jerusalem, he
would guard their unprotected homes by restraining
the covetous designs and desires of their heathen neighbours.
2. God exerts upon the
wicked a softening influence
disposing them contrary to their natural inclinations to do that which will
promote his cause.
Above, we referred to Joseph's history as an illustration of God
exerting a restraining influence upon
the wicked, let us note now his experiences in Egypt as exemplifying our
assertion that God also exerts a softening
influence upon the unrighteous. We are told that while he was in the house of
Potiphar, "The Lord was with Joseph, and his master saw the Lord was with
him", and in consequence, "Joseph found favour in his sight and he
made him overseer over his house" (#Ge 39:3,4). Later,
when Joseph was unjustly cast into prison, we are told, "But the Lord was
with Joseph, and showed him mercy, and gave
him favour in the sight of the keeper
of the prison" (#Ge 39:21), and in consequence the prison keeper shewed him much kindness
and honour. Finally, after his release from prison, we learn from #Ac 7:10 that the
Lord "gave him favour and wisdom in the sight of Pharaoh king of Egypt; and he
made him governor over Egypt and all his house."
An equally striking evidence of God's power to melt the hearts of
his enemies, was seen in Pharaoh's daughter's treatment of the infant Moses.
The incident is well known. Pharaoh had issued an edict commanding the destruction
of every male child of the Israelites. A certain Levite had a son born to him
who for three months was kept hidden by his mother. No longer able to conceal
the infant Moses, she placed him in an ark of bulrushes, and laid him by the
river's brink. The ark was discovered by none less than the king's daughter who
had come down to the river to bathe, but instead of heeding her father's wicked
decree and casting the child into the river, we are told that she had compassion on him (#Ex 2:6)!
Accordingly, the young life was spared and later Moses became the adopted son
of this princess!
God has access to the hearts of all men and he softens or hardens
them according to his sovereign purpose. The profane Esau swore vengeance upon
his brother for the deception which he had practised upon his father, yet when
next he met Jacob, instead of slaying him we are told that Esau "fell on
his neck and kissed him" (#Ge 33:4)! Ahab, the weak and wicked consort
of Jezebel, was highly enraged against Elijah the prophet, at whose word the
heavens had been shut up for three years and a half: so angry was he against
the one whom he regarded as his enemy that, we are told he searched for him in
every nation and kingdom, and when he could not be found "he took an
oath" (#1Ki 18:10). Yet, when, they met, instead of killing the prophet, Ahab
meekly obeyed Elijah's behest and "sent unto all the children of Israel
and gathered the prophets together unto Mount Carmel" (#1Ki 18:20). Again;
Esther the poor Jewess is about to enter the presence chamber of the august
Medo-Persian monarch which, said she, "is not according to the law" (#Es 4:16). She went
in expecting to "perish", but we are told "She obtained favour in
his sight, and the king held out to Esther the golden sceptre" (#Es 5:2). Yet
again; the boy Daniel is a captive in a foreign court. The king
"appointed" a daily provision of meat and drink for Daniel and his
fellows. But Daniel purposed in his heart that he would not defile himself with
the allotted portion, and accordingly made known his purpose to his master, the
prince of the eunuchs. What happened? His master was a heathen, and
"feared" the king. Did he turn then upon Daniel and angrily demand
that his orders be promptly carried out? No; for we read, "Now God had brought Daniel into favour and tender love with the prince of the eunuchs"
(#Da
1:9)!
"The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, as the rivers
of water: He turneth it whithersoever he will" (#Pr 21:1). A
remarkable illustration of this is seen in Cyrus, the heathen king of Persia.
God's people were in captivity, but the predicted end of their captivity was
almost reached. Meanwhile the temple at Jerusalem lay in ruins, and, as we have
said, the Jews were in bondage in a distant land. What hope was there then that
the Lord's house would be rebuilt? Mark now what God did, "Now in the
first year of Cyrus king of Persia, that the word of the Lord by the mouth of
Jeremiah might be fulfilled, the Lord
stirred up the spirit of Cyrus king
of Persia, that he made a proclamation throughout all his kingdom, and put it
in writing, saying, `Thus saith Cyrus king of Persia, the Lord God of heaven
hath given me all the kingdoms of the earth; and he hath charged me to build him
a house at Jerusalem, which is in Judah'" (#Ezr 1:1,2). Cyrus, be
it remembered, was a pagan, and as secular history bears witness, a very wicked
man, yet the Lord moved him to issue this edict, that his word through Jeremiah
seventy years before might be fulfilled. A similar and further illustration is
found in #Ezr 7:27, where we find Ezra returning thanks for what God had caused king
Artaxerxes to do in completing and beautifying the house which Cyrus had
commanded to be erected--"Blessed be the Lord God of our fathers which hath put such a thing as this in the king's heart, to beautify the house
of the Lord which is in Jerusalem" (#Ezr 7:27).
3. God exerts upon the
wicked a directing influence so that good is made to result from their intended
evil.
Once more we revert to the history of Joseph as a case in point.
In selling Joseph to the Ishmaelites, his brethren were actuated by cruel and
heartless motives. Their object was to make away with him, and the passing of
these travelling traders furnished an easy way out for them. To them he act was
nothing more than the enslaving of a noble youth for the sake of gain. But now
observe how God was secretly working and overruling their wicked actions.
Providence so ordered it that these Ishmaelites passed by just in time to
prevent Joseph being murdered, for his brethren had already taken counsel
together to put him to death. Further; these Ishmaelites were journeying to
Egypt, which was the very country to which God
had purposed to send Joseph, and he ordained
they should purchase Joseph just when they did. That the hand of God was in
this incident, that it was something more than a fortunate coincidence, is
clear from the words of Joseph to his brethren at a later date, "God sent me before you to preserve
you a posterity in the earth, and to save your lives by a great
deliverance" (#Ge 45:7).
Another equally striking illustration of God directing the wicked is found in #Isa 10:5-7--"O
Assyrian, the rod of mine anger, and the staff in their hand is mine
indignation. I will send him against
a hypocritical nation, and against the people of my wrath will I give him a
charge, to take the spoil, and to take the prey, and to tread them down like
the mire of the streets. How be it he
meaneth not so, neither doth his
heart think so; but it is in his heart to destroy and cut off nations not a
few." Assyria's king had determined to be a world conqueror, to "cut
off nations not a few." But God directed
and controlled his military lust and
ambition, and caused him to confine his attention to the conquering of the
insignificant nation of Israel. Such a task was not in the proud king's
heart--"he meant it not so"--but God
gave him this charge and he could do nothing but fulfil it. Compare also #Jud 7:22.
The supreme example of the controlling,
directing influence, which God exerts upon the wicked, is the cross of Christ with all its attending circumstances. If ever
the superintending providence of God
was witnessed, it was there. From all eternity God had predestined every detail
of that event of all events. Nothing was left to chance or the caprice of man.
God had decreed when and where and how his blessed Son was to die. Much of what
he had purposed concerning the crucifixion had been made known through the Old Testament
prophets, and in the accurate and literal fulfilment
of these prophecies we have clear proof, full demonstration, of the controlling
and directing influence which God exerts upon the wicked. Not a thing occurred
except as God had ordained, and all that
he had ordained took place exactly as he purposed. Had it been decreed (and
made known in Scripture) that the Saviour should be betrayed by one of his own
disciples--by his "familiar friend"--see #Ps
41:9 and compare #Mt 26:50--then the
apostle Judas is the one who sold him. Had it been decreed that the betrayer
should receive for his awful perfidy thirty pieces of silver, then are the
chief priests moved to offer him this very sum. Had it been decreed that this
betrayal sum should be put to a particular use, namely, purchase the potter's
field, then the hand of God directs Judas to return the money to the chief
priests and so guided their "counsel" (#Mt 27:7) that they did this very
thing. Had it been decreed that there should be those who bore "false
witness" against our Lord (#Ps 35:11), then accordingly such were raised up. Had it been
decreed that the Lord of glory should be "spat upon and scourged" (#Isa 50:6), then there
were not found wanting those who were vile enough to do so. Had it been decreed
that the Saviour should be "numbered with the transgressors", then
unknown to himself, Pilate, directed by God, gave orders for his crucifixion
along with two thieves. Had it been decreed that vinegar and gall should be
given him to drink while he hung upon the cross, then this decree of God was
executed to the very letter. Had it been decreed that the heartless soldiers
should gamble for his garments, then sure enough they did this very thing. Had
it been decreed that not a bone of him should be broken (#Ps 34:20), then the
controlling hand of God which suffered the Roman soldier to break the legs of
the thieves, prevented him from doing the same with our Lord. Ah! there were
not enough soldiers in all the Roman legions, there were not sufficient demons
in all the hierarchies of Satan, to break one bone in the body of Christ. And
why? Because the Almighty Sovereign had decreed that not a bone should be broken. Do we need to extend
this paragraph any farther? Does not the accurate and literal fulfilment of all
that scripture had predicted in connection with the crucifixion, demonstrate
beyond all controversy that an Almighty power was directing and superintending
everything that was done on that Day of days?
4. God also hardens the hearts of wicked men and blinds their minds.
"God hardens men's
hearts! God blinds men's minds!"
Yes, so Scripture represents him. In developing this theme of the sovereignty
of God in operation we recognise that we have now reached its most solemn
aspect of all, and that here especially, we need to keep very close indeed to
the words of Holy Writ. God forbid that we should go one fraction further than his Word goes; but may he
give us grace to go as far as his
Word goes. It is true that secret things belong unto the Lord, but it is also
true that those things which are revealed in Scripture belong unto us and to
our children.
"He turned their
heart to hate his people, to deal subtly with his servants" (#Ps 105:25). The
reference here is to the sojourn of the descendants of Jacob in the land of
Egypt when, after the death of the Pharaoh who had welcomed the old patriarch
and his family, there "arose up a new king who knew not Joseph"; and
in his days the children of Israel had "increased greatly" so that
they outnumbered the Egyptians; then it was that God "turned their heart
to hate his people."
The consequence of the Egyptians' "hatred" is well
known: they brought them into cruel bondage and placed them under merciless
taskmasters, until their lot became unendurable. Helpless and wretched the
Israelites cried unto Jehovah, and in response, he appointed Moses to be their
deliverer. God revealed himself unto his chosen servant, gave him a number of
miraculous signs which he was to exhibit at the Egyptian court, and then bade
him go to Pharaoh, and demand that the Israelites should be allowed to go a
three days' journey into the wilderness, that they might worship the Lord. But
before Moses started out on his journey God warned him concerning Pharaoh, "I will harden his heart that he shall not let the people go" (#Ex 4:21). If it be
asked, Why did God harden Pharaoh's
heart? The answer furnished by Scripture itself is, In order that God might
show forth his power in him (#Ro 9:17); in other
words, it was so that the Lord might demonstrate that it was just as easy for
him to overthrow this haughty and powerful monarch as it was for him to crush a
worm. If it should be pressed further, Why did God select such a method of displaying his power? then the answer must
be, that being sovereign God reserves to himself the right to act as he
pleases.
Not only are we told that God hardened the heart of Pharaoh so
that he would not let the Israelites go, but after God had plagued his land so
severely that he reluctantly gave a qualified permission, and after that the
firstborn of all the Egyptians had been slain, and Israel had actually left the
land of bondage, God told Moses, "And I, behold, I will harden the hearts of
the Egyptians, and they shall follow them: and I will get me honour upon
Pharaoh, upon his chariots, and upon his horsemen. And the Egyptians shall know
that I am the Lord, when I have gotten me honour upon Pharaoh, upon his
chariots, and upon his horsemen" (#Ex 14:17,18).
The same thing happened subsequently in connection with Sihon king
of Heshbon, through whose territory Israel had to pass on their way to the
promised land. When reviewing their history, Moses told the people, "But
Sihon king of Heshbon would not let us pass by him: for the Lord thy God hardened
his spirit, and made his heart obstinate, that he might deliver him into
thy hand" (#De 2:30)!
So it was also after that Israel had entered Canaan. We read,
"There was not a city that made peace with the children of Israel, save
the Hivites the inhabitants of Gibeon: all other they took in battle. For it
was of the Lord to harden their hearts, that they should come against Israel in battle, that he might
destroy them utterly, and that they might have no favour, but that he might
destroy them, as the Lord commanded Moses" (#Jos 11:19,20). From
other scriptures we learn why God purposed to "destroy utterly" the
Canaanites--it was because of their awful wickedness and corruption.
Nor is the revelation of this solemn truth confined to the Old
Testament. In #Joh 12:37-40 we read, "But though he had done so many
miracles before them, yet they believed not on him: that (in order that) the
saying of Isaiah the prophet might be fulfilled, which he spake, Lord, who
hath believed our report? and to whom hath the arm of the Lord been revealed? Therefore they could not believe,
because that Isaiah said again, he hath blinded their eyes, and hardened their heart; that they should not see
with their eyes, nor understand with their heart, and be converted, and I
should heal them." It needs to be carefully noted here that these whose
eyes God "blinded" and whose heart he "hardened", were men
who had deliberately scorned the Light and rejected the testimony of God's own
Son.
Similarly we read in #2Th 2:11,12, "And for
this cause God shall send them strong delusion, that they
should believe a lie: that they all might be damned who believed not the truth,
but had pleasure in unrighteousness". The fulfilment of this scripture is
yet future. What God did unto the Jews of old he is yet going to do unto
Christendom. Just as the Jews of Christ's day despised his testimony, and in
consequence, were "blinded", so a guilty Christendom which has
rejected the truth shall yet have sent them from God a "strong
delusion" that they may believe a lie.
Is God really governing the world? Is he exercising rule over the
human family? What is the modus operandi
of his governmental administration over mankind? To what extent and by what
means does he control the sons of men? How
does God exercise an influence upon the wicked, seeing their hearts are at
enmity against him? These are some of the questions we have sought to answer
from Scripture in the previous sections of this chapter. Upon his own elect God
exerts a quickening, an energising, a directing, and a preserving power. Upon
the wicked God exerts a restraining, softening, directing, and hardening and
blinding power, according to the dictates of his own infinite wisdom and unto
the outworking of his own eternal purpose. God's decrees are being executed.
What he has ordained is being accomplished. Man's
wickedness is bounded. The limits
of evil doing and of evildoers has been divinely defined and cannot be
exceeded. Though many are in ignorance of it, all men, good and bad, are under the
jurisdiction of and are absolutely subject to the administration of the Supreme
Sovereign. --"Alleluia: for the Lord God omnipotent reigneth" (#Re 19:6)--reigneth
over all.
Chapter 7 --
God's Sovereignty And The Human Will
"It is God which worketh in you both to will and to do of his
good pleasure" (#Php 2:13).
Concerning the nature and the power of fallen man's will, the
greatest confusion prevails today, and the most erroneous views are held, even
by many of God's children. The popular idea now prevailing, and which is taught
from the great majority of pulpits, is that man has a "free will",
and that salvation comes to the sinner through his will cooperating with the Holy Spirit. To deny the "free
will" of man, i.e. his power to choose that which is good, his native
ability to accept Christ, is to bring one into disfavour at once, even before
most of those who profess to be orthodox. And yet Scripture emphatically says, "It is not of him that willeth, nor
of him that runneth, but of God that sheweth mercy" (#Ro 9:16). Which
shall we believe: God, or the preachers?
But some one may reply, Did not Joshua say to Israel, "Choose
you this day whom ye will serve"? Yes, he did; but why not complete his
sentence?--"whether the gods
that your fathers served which were on the other side of the flood, or the gods of the Amorites, in whose
land ye dwell" (#Jos 24:15)! But why attempt to pit scripture against scripture? The Word of God never contradicts itself, and
the Word expressly declares, "There is none
that seeketh after God" (#Ro 3:11). Did not
Christ say to the men of his day, "Ye will
not come to me, that ye might have life" (#Joh 5:40)? Yes, but
some did come to him, some did receive him. True and who were they?
#Joh
1:12,13 tells us: "But as many as received him, to them gave he
power to become the sons of God, to them that believe on his name: which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the
will of man, but of God"!
But does not Scripture say, "Whosoever will may come"?
It does, but does this signify that everybody has the will to come? What of those who will
not come? "Whosoever will may come" no more implies that fallen
man has the power (in himself) to
come, than "Stretch forth thine hand" implied that the man with the
withered arm had ability (in himself) to comply. In and of himself the natural
man has power to reject Christ; but in and of himself he has not the power to
receive Christ. And why? Because he has a mind hat is "enmity against
him" (#Ro 8:7); because he has a heart that hates him (#Joh 15:18). Man
chooses that which is according to his nature, and therefore before he will
ever choose or prefer that which is divine and spiritual, a new nature must be
imparted to him; in other words, he must
be born again.
Should it be asked, But does not the Holy Spirit overcome a man's enmity and hatred when
he convicts the sinner of his sins and his need of Christ; and does not the
Spirit of God produce such conviction in many that perish? Such language
betrays confusion of thought: were such a man's enmity really "overcome", then he would readily turn to Christ; that he does not come to the Saviour,
demonstrates that his enmity is not overcome. But that many are, through the
preaching of the Word, convicted by the Holy Spirit, who nevertheless die in
unbelief, is solemnly true. Yet, it is a fact which must not be lost sight of
that, the Holy Spirit does something more
in each of God's elect than he does in the non-elect: he works in them
"both to will and to do of God's good pleasure" (#Php 2:13).
In reply to what we have said above, Arminians would answer, No;
the Spirit's work of conviction is the same both in the converted and in the
unconverted, that which distinguishes the one class from the other is that the
former yielded to his strivings,
whereas the latter resist them. But
if this were the case, then the
Christian would make himself to
"differ", whereas the Scripture attributes the "differing"
to God's discriminating grace (#1Co 4:7). Again; if such were the case, then the Christian would
have ground for boasting and self-glorying over his cooperation with the Spirit; but this would flatly contradict #Eph 2:8, "For
by grace are ye saved through faith; and that not of yourselves: it is the gift of God".
Let us appeal to the actual experience of the Christian reader.
Was there not a time (may the remembrance of it bow each of us into the dust)
when you were unwilling to come to Christ? There was. Since then you have come to him. Are you now prepared
to give him all the glory for that (#Ps 115:1)? Do you
not acknowledge you came to Christ because the Holy Spirit brought you from
unwillingness to willingness? You do. Then is it not also a patent fact that
the Holy Spirit has not done in many others what he has in you! Granting that many others have heard the Gospel, been
shown their need of Christ, yet, they are still unwilling to come to him. Thus
he has wrought more in you, than in
them. Do you answer, "Yet I remember well the time when the Great Issue
was presented to me, and my consciousness testifies that my will acted and that I yielded to the claims of Christ upon
me". Quite true. But before you
"yielded", the Holy Spirit overcame the native enmity of your mind
against God, and this "enmity" he does not overcome in all. Should it
be said, "That is because they are unwilling for their enmity to be
overcome". Ah, none are thus "willing" till he has put forth his
all mighty power and wrought a
miracle of grace in the heart.
But let us now inquire, What
is the human will? Is it a self-determining agent, or is it, in turn,
determined by something else? Is it sovereign or servant? Is the will superior
to every other faculty of our being so that it governs them, or is it moved by
their impulses and subject to their pleasure? Does the will rule the mind, or
does the mind control the will? Is the will free to do as it pleases, or is it
under the necessity of rendering obedience to something outside of itself?
"Does the will stand apart from the other great faculties or powers of the
soul, a man within a man, who can
reverse the man and fly against the man and split him into segments, as a glass
snake breaks in pieces? Or, is the will connected with the other faculties, as
the tail of the serpent is with his body, and that again with his head, so that
where the head goes, the whole creature goes, and, as a man thinketh in his heart, so is he? First thought, then heart (desire or aversion),
and then act. Is it this way, the dog wags the tail? Or, is it the will, the
tail, wags the dog? Is the will the first and chief thing in the man, or is it
the last thing--to be kept subordinate, and in its place beneath the other
faculties? and, is the true philosophy of moral action and its process that of #Ge 3:6: `And when
the woman saw that the tree was good for food' (sense perception,
intelligence), `and a tree to be desired' (affections), `she took and ate
thereof' (the will)." (G.S. Bishop). These are questions of more than
academical interest. They are of practical importance. We believe that we do
not go too far when we affirm that the answer returned to these questions is a
fundamental test of doctrinal soundness. {a}
1. The Nature Of The Human
Will.
What is the Will? We answer, the will is the faculty of choice,
the immediate cause of all action. Choice necessarily implies the refusal of
one thing and the acceptance, of another. The positive and the negative must
both be present to the mind before there can be any choice. In every, act of
the will there is a preference--the desiring of one thing rather than another.
Where there is no preference, but complete indifference, there is no volition.
To will is to choose, and to choose is to decide between two or more
alternatives. But there is something which influences
the choice; something which determines
the decision. Hence he will cannot be sovereign because it is the servant of
that something. The will cannot be both sovereign and servant. It cannot be
both cause and effect. The will is not
causative, because, as we have said, something causes it to choose, therefore that something must
be the causative agent. Choice itself is affected by certain considerations, is
determined by various influences brought to bear upon the individual himself, hence, volition is the effect of these
considerations and influences, and if the effect, it must be their servant; and if the will is their
servant then it is not sovereign, and if the will is not sovereign, we certainly cannot predicate absolute
"freedom" of it. Acts of the will cannot come to pass of
themselves--to say they can, is to postulate an uncaused effect. "Ex nihilo nihil fit"--nothing cannot
produce something.
In all ages, however, there have been those who
contended for the absolute freedom or sovereignty of the human will. Men will
argue that the will possesses a self-determining
power. They say, for example, I can turn my eyes up or down, the mind is quite
indifferent which I do, the will must decide. But this is a contradiction in
terms. This case supposes that I choose one thing in preference to another,
while I am in a state of complete indifference. Manifestly, both cannot be
true. But it may be replied, the mind was quite indifferent until it came to
have a preference. Exactly; and at that time the will was quiescent, too! But
the moment indifference vanished, choice was made, and the fact that
indifference gave place to preference, overthrows the argument that the will is
capable of choosing between two equal things. As we have said, choice implies
the acceptance of one alternative and the rejection of the other or others.
That
which determines the will is that which causes it to choose. If the will is
determined, then there must be a determiner. What is it that determines the will? We reply, The strongest motive
power which is brought to bear upon it. What this motive power is, varies in
different cases. With one it may be the logic of reason, with another the voice
of conscience, with another the impulse of the emotions, with another the
whisper of the tempter, with another the power of the Holy Spirit; whichever of
these presents the strongest motive
power and exerts the greatest
influence upon the individual himself,
is that which impels the will to act. In other words, the action of the will is
determined by that condition of mind (which in turn is influenced by the world,
the flesh, and the Devil, as well as by God), which has the greatest degree of
tendency to excite volition. To illustrate what we have just said let us
analyze a simple example--
On a
certain Lord's day afternoon a friend of ours was suffering from a severe
headache. He was anxious to visit the sick, but feared that if he did so his
own condition would grow worse, and as the consequence, be unable to attend the
preaching of the Gospel that evening. Two alternatives confronted him: to visit
the sick that afternoon and risk being sick himself, or, to take a rest that
afternoon (and visit the sick the next day), and probably arise refreshed and
fit for the evening service. Now what was it that decided our friend in
choosing between these two alternatives? The will? Not at all. True, that in the end, the will made a choice,
but the will itself was moved to make
the choice. In the above case certain considerations presented strong motives
for selecting either alternative; these motives were balanced the one against
the other by the individual himself,
i.e., his heart and mind, and the one alternative being supported by stronger
motives than the other, decision was formed accordingly, and then the will acted. On the one side, our friend felt impelled
by a sense of duty to visit the sick; he was moved with compassion to do so,
and thus a strong motive was presented to his mind. On the other hand, his
judgment reminded him that he was feeling far from well himself, that he badly
needed a rest, that if he visited the sick his own condition would probably be
made worse, and in such case he would be prevented from attending the preaching
of the Gospel that night; furthermore, he knew that on the morrow, the Lord
willing, he could visit the sick, and this being so, he concluded he ought to
rest that afternoon. Here then were two sets of alternatives presented to our
Christian brother: on the one side was a sense of duty plus his own sympathy,
on the other side was a sense of his own need plus a real concern for God's
glory, for he felt that he ought to
attend the preaching of the Gospel that night. The latter prevailed. Spiritual
considerations outweighed his sense of duty. Having formed his decision the
will acted accordingly, and he retired to rest. An analysis of the above case
shows that the mind or reasoning faculty was directed by spiritual
considerations, and the mind regulated and controlled the will. Hence we say
that, if the will is controlled, it
is neither sovereign nor free, but is the servant of the mind.
It is
only as we see the real nature of freedom and mark that the will is subject to
the motives brought to bear upon it, that we are able to discern there is no
conflict between two statements of Holy Writ which concern our blessed Lord. In
#Mt 4:1 we read,
"Then was Jesus led up of the Spirit into the wilderness to
be tempted of the Devil"; but in #Mr
1:12,13 we are told, "And immediately the
Spirit driveth him into the
wilderness. And he was there in the wilderness forty days, tempted of
Satan". It is utterly impossible to harmonize these two statements by the
Arminian conception of the will. But really there is no difficulty. That Christ
was "driven", implies it was by a forcible motive or powerful
impulse, such as was not to be resisted or refused; that he was "led"
denotes his freedom in going. Putting the two together we learn, that he was driven, with a voluntary condescension thereto. So, there is the liberty of
man's will and the victorious efficacy of God's grace united together: a sinner
may be "drawn" and yet "come" to Christ--the
"drawing" presenting to him the irresistible motive, the "coming"
signifying the response of his will--as Christ was "driven" and
"led" by the Spirit into the wilderness.
Human philosophy insists that it is the will which governs the
man, but the Word of God teaches that it is the heart which is the dominating centre of our being. Many scriptures
might be quoted in substantiation of this. "Keep thy heart with all
diligence; for out of it are the
issues of life" (#Pr 4:23). "For from within, out
of the heart of men, proceed evil
thoughts, adulteries, fornications, murders", etc. (#Mr 7:21). Here our
Lord traces these sinful acts back to their source, and declares that their
fountain is the "heart", and not the will! Again; "This people
draweth nigh unto me with their lips, but their
heart is far from me" (#Mt 15:8). If
further proof were required we might call attention to the fact that the word
"heart" is found in the Bible more than three times oftener than is
the word "will", even though nearly half of the references to the
latter refer to God's will!
When we affirm that it is the heart
and not the will which governs the man, we are not merely striving about words,
but insisting on a distinction that is of vital importance. Here is an
individual before whom two alternatives are placed; which will he choose? We
answer, the one which is most agreeable to himself, i.e., his
"heart"--the innermost core of his being. Before the sinner is set a
life of virtue and piety, and a life of sinful indulgence; which will he
follow? The latter. Why? Because this is his choice. But does that prove the
will is sovereign? Not at all. Go back from effect to cause. Why does the sinner choose a life of
sinful indulgence? Because he prefers
it--and he does prefer it, all
arguments to the contrary not withstanding, though of course he does not enjoy
the effects of such a course. And why
does he prefer it? Because his heart
is sinful. The same alternatives, in like manner, confront the Christian, and
he chooses and strives after a life of piety and virtue. Why? Because God has
given him a new heart or nature.
Hence we say it is not the will which
makes the sinner impervious to all appeals to "forsake his way", but
his corrupt and evil heart. He will
not come to Christ, because he does
not want to, and he does not want to because his heart hates him and loves sin: see #Jer 17:9!
In defining the will we have said above, that "the will is
the faculty of choice, the immediate cause of all action." We say the immediate cause, for the will is not the
primary cause of any action, any more than the hand is. Just as the hand is
controlled by the muscles and nerves of the arm, and the arm by the brain; so
the will is the servant of the mind, and the mind, in turn, is affected by
various influences and motives which are brought to bear upon it. But, it may
be asked, Does not Scripture make its appeal to man's will? Is it not written, "And whosoever will, let him take the water of life freely" (#Re 22:17)? And did
not our Lord say, "ye will not
come to me that ye might have life" (#Joh 5:40)? We
answer; the appeal of Scripture is not always made to man's "will";
other of his faculties are also addressed. For example: "He that hath ears to hear, let him hear." "Hear and your soul shall
live." "Look unto me and be
ye saved." "Believe on the
Lord Jesus Christ and thou shall be saved." "Come now and let us reason together", "with the heart man believeth unto
righteousness", etc., etc.
2. The
Bondage Of The Human Will.
In any
treatise that proposes to deal with the human will, its nature and functions,
respect should be had to the will in three different men, namely, unfallen
Adam, the sinner, and the Lord Jesus Christ. In unfallen Adam the will was free, free in both directions, free toward good and free toward evil. Adam was
created in a state of innocency, but
not in a state of holiness, as is so often assumed and asserted. Adam's will
was therefore in a condition of moral equipoise: that is to say, in Adam there
was no constraining bias in him
toward either good or evil, and as such, Adam differed radically from all his
descendants, as well as from "the Man Christ Jesus." But with the
sinner it is far otherwise. The sinner is born with a will that is not in a condition of moral equipoise,
because in him there is a heart that is "deceitful above all things and
desperately wicked", and this gives him a bias toward evil. So, too, with the Lord Jesus it was far
otherwise: He also differed radically from unfallen Adam. The Lord Jesus Christ
could not sin because he was
"the Holy One of God." Before he was born into this world it was said
to Mary, "The Holy Spirit shall come upon thee, and the power of the
Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that Holy Thing which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son
of God" (#Lu 1:35).
Speaking reverently then, we say, that the will of the Son of Man was not in a condition of moral equipoise,
that is, capable of turning toward either good or evil. The will of the Lord
Jesus was biased toward that which is
good because, side by side with his sinless, holy, perfect humanity, was
his eternal Deity. Now in contradistinction from the will of the Lord Jesus
which was biased toward good, and Adam's will which, before his fall, was in a
condition of moral equipoise--capable of turning toward either good or
evil--the sinner's will is biased toward evil, and
therefore is free in one direction only, namely, in the direction of evil. The
sinner's will is enslaved because it
is in bondage to and is the servant of a depraved heart.
In what does the sinner's freedom consist? This question is
naturally suggested by what we have just said above. The sinner is
"free" in the sense of being unforced from without. God never forces
the sinner to sin. But the sinner is not "free" to do either good or evil, because an evil
heart within is ever inclining him toward sin. Let us illustrate what we have
in mind. I hold in my hand a book. I release it; what happens? It falls. In
which direction? Downwards; always downwards. Why? Because, answering the law
of gravity, its own weight sinks it. Suppose I desire that book to occupy a
position three feet higher; then what? I must lift it; a power outside of that
book must raise it. Such is the relationship which fallen man sustains toward
God. While divine power upholds him, he is preserved from plunging still deeper
into sin; let that power be withdrawn, and he falls--his own weight (of sin)
drags him down. God does not push him down, any more than I did that book. Let
all divine restraint be removed, and every man is capable of becoming, would
become, a Cain, a Pharaoh, a Judas. How then is the sinner to move heavenwards?
By an act of his own will? Not so. A power outside of himself must grasp hold
of him and lift him every inch of the way. The sinner is free, but free in one
direction only--free to fall, free to sin. As the Word expresses it: "For
when ye were the servants of sin, ye were free
from righteousness" (#Ro 6:20). The sinner is free to do as he
pleases, always as he pleases (except as he is restrained by God), but his
pleasure is to sin.
In the opening paragraph of this chapter we insisted that a proper
conception of the nature and function of the will is of practical importance,
nay, that it constitutes a fundamental test of theological orthodoxy or
doctrinal soundness. We wish to amplify this statement and attempt to
demonstrate its accuracy. The freedom or bondage of the will was the dividing
line between Augustinianism and Pelagianism, and in more recent times between
Calvinism and Arminianism. Reduced to simple terms, this means, that the
difference involved was the affirmation or denial of the total depravity of
man. In taking the affirmative we shall now consider,
3. The Impotency Of The
Human Will.
Does it lie within the province of man's will to accept or reject
the Lord Jesus Christ as Saviour? Granted that the Gospel is preached to the
sinner, that the Holy Spirit convicts him of his lost condition, does it, in
the final analysis, lie within the power of his own will to resist or to yield
himself up to God? The answer to this question defines our conception of human
depravity. That man is a fallen creature all professing Christians will allow,
but what many of them mean by "fallen" is often difficult to
determine. The general impression seems to be that man is now mortal, that he
is no longer in the condition in which he left the hands of his Creator, that
he is liable to disease, that he inherits evil tendencies; but, that if he
employs his powers to the best of his ability, somehow he will be happy at
last. O, how far short of the sad truth! Infirmities, sickness, even corporeal
death, are but trifles in comparison with the moral and spiritual effects of
the Fall! It is only by consulting the Holy Scriptures that we are able to
obtain some conception of the extent of that terrible calamity.
When we say that man is totally depraved, we mean that the
entrance of sin into the human constitution has affected every part and faculty
of man's being. Total depravity means that man is, in spirit and soul and body,
the slave of sin and the captive of the Devil--walking "according to the
prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of
disobedience" (#Eph 2:2). This statement ought not to need arguing: it is a common fact
of human experience. Man is unable to
realize his own aspirations and materialize his own ideals. He cannot do the things that he would.
There is a moral inability which paralyses him. This is proof positive that he
is no free man, but instead, the slave of sin and Satan. "Ye are of your
father the Devil, and the lusts (desires) of your father ye will do" (#Joh 8:44). Sin is
more than an act or a series of acts; it is a state or condition: it is that
which lies behind and produces the acts. Sin has penetrated and permeated the
whole of man's make up. It has blinded the understanding, corrupted the heart,
and alienated the mind from God. And the
will has not escaped. The will is under the dominion of sin and Satan.
Therefore, the will is not free. In short, the affections love as they do and
the will chooses as it does because of the state of the heart, and because the heart is deceitful above all things and
desperately wicked "There is none
that seeketh after God" (#Ro 3:11).
We repeat our question; Does it lie within the power of the
sinner's will to yield himself up to God? Let us attempt an answer by asking
several others: Can water (of itself) rise above its own level? Can a clean thing
come out of an unclean? Can the will reverse the whole tendency and strain of
human nature? Can that which is under the dominion of sin originate that which
is pure and holy? Manifestly not. If ever the will of a fallen and depraved
creature is to move God-wards, a Divine power must be brought to bear upon it
which will overcome the influences of sin that pull in a counter direction.
This is only another way of saying, "No man can come to me, except the
Father which hath sent me, draw him"
(#Joh
6:44). In other words, God's people must be made willing in the day of his power (#Ps 110:3). As said
Mr. Darby, "If Christ came to save that which is lost, free will has no place. Not that God prevents men from
receiving Christ--far from it. But even when God uses all possible inducements,
all that is capable of exerting influence in the heart of man, it only serves
to show that man will have none of it, that so corrupt is his heart, and so
decided his will not to submit to God (however much it may be the devil who
encourages him to sin) that nothing can induce him to receive the Lord, and to
give up sin. If by the words, 'freedom of man', they mean that no one forces
him to reject the Lord, this liberty fully exists. But if it is said that, on
account of the dominion of sin, of which he is the slave, and that voluntarily,
he cannot escape from his condition, and make choice of the good--even while
acknowledging it to be good, and approving of it--then he has no liberty
whatever (italics ours). He is not subject to the law, neither indeed can
be; hence, they that are in the flesh cannot please God."
The will is not sovereign; it is a servant, because influenced and
controlled by the other faculties of man's being. The sinner is not a free
agent because he is a slave of sin--this was clearly implied in our Lord's
words, "If the Son shall therefore make
you free, ye shall be free indeed" (#Joh 8:36). Man is a
rational being and as such responsible and accountable to God, but to affirm
that he is a free moral agent is to deny that he is totally depraved--i.e.,
depraved in will as in everything else. Because man's will is governed by his
mind and heart, and because these have been vitiated and corrupted by sin, then
it follows that if ever man is to turn or move in a God-ward direction, God
himself must work in him "both to
will and to do of his good pleasure" (#Php 2:13). Man's
boasted freedom is in truth the "bondage of corruption"; he "serves divers lusts and
pleasures." Said a deeply taught servant of God, "Man is impotent as
to his will. He has no will favourable to God. I believe in free will; but then
it is a will only free to act according to nature (italics ours). A dove has no will
to eat carrion; a raven no will to eat the clean food of the dove. Put the
nature of the dove into the raven and it will eat the food of the dove. Satan
could have no will for holiness. We speak it with reverence, God could have no
will for evil. The sinner in his sinful nature could never have a will
according to God. For this he must be born again" (J. Denham Smith). This
is just what we have contended for throughout this chapter--the will is regulated by the nature.
Among the "decrees" of the Council of
Trent (1563), which is the avowed standard of Popery, we find the following:--
"If
any one shall affirm, that man's free will, moved and excited by God, does not,
by consenting, cooperate with God, the mover and exciter, so as to prepare and dispose itself for the attainment
of justification; if moreover, anyone shall say, that the human will cannot
refuse complying, if it pleases; but
that it is inactive, and merely passive; let such an one be accursed"!
"If
anyone shall affirm, that since the fall of Adam, man's free will is lost and extinguished; or, that it is a
thing titular, yea a name, without a thing, and a fiction introduced by Satan
into the Church; let such an one be
accursed"!
Thus,
those who today insist on the free will of the natural man believe precisely
what Rome teaches on the subject! That Roman Catholics and Arminians walk hand
in hand may be seen from others of the decrees issued by the Council of
Trent:--"If any one shall affirm that a regenerate and justified man is bound
to believe that he is certainly in the number of the elect (which, #1Th 1:4,5 plainly
teaches. A.W.P.) let such an one be accursed"! "If any one shall
affirm with positive and absolute certainty, that he shall surely have the gift
of perseverance to the end (which #Joh
10:28-30 assuredly guarantees, A.W.P.); let
him be accursed"! In order for any sinner to be saved three things were
indispensable: God the Father had to purpose
his salvation, God the Son had to purchase
it, God the Spirit has to apply it.
God does more than "propose" to us: were he only to "invite", every last one of us would be lost.
This is strikingly illustrated in the Old Testament. In #Ezr 1:1-3 we read,
"Now in the first year of Cyrus king of Persia, that the word of the Lord
by the mouth of Jeremiah might be fulfilled, the Lord stirred up the spirit of
Cyrus king of Persia, that he made a proclamation throughout all his kingdom,
and put it also in writing saying, Thus saith Cyrus king of Persia, the Lord
God of heaven hath given me all the kingdoms of the earth, and he hath charged
me to build him an house at Jerusalem, which is in Judah. Who is there among
you of all his people? His God be with him, and let him go up to Jerusalem
which is in Judah, and build the house of the Lord God of Israel." Here
was an "offer" made, made
to a people in captivity, affording them opportunity to leave and return to
Jerusalem-- God's dwelling place. Did all
Israel eagerly respond to this offer? No indeed. The vast majority were content
to remain in the enemy's land. Only an insignificant "remnant"
availed themselves of this overture of mercy! And why did they? Hear the
answer of Scripture: "Then rose up the chief of the fathers of Judah and
Benjamin, and the priests, and the Levites, with all whose spirit God had stirred up, to go up to build
the house of the Lord which is in Jerusalem" (#Ezr 1:5)! In like manner,
God "stirs up" the spirits
of his elect when the effectual call comes to them, and not till then do they
have any willingness to respond to
the Divine proclamation.
The superficial work of many of the professional evangelists of
the last fifty years is largely responsible for the erroneous views now current
upon the bondage of the natural man,
encouraged by the laziness of those in the pew in their failure to "prove all things" (#1Th 5:21). The
average evangelical pulpit conveys the impression that it lies wholly in the
power of the sinner whether or not he shall be saved. It is said that "God
has done his part, now man must do his." Alas, what can a lifeless man do, and man by nature is "dead in trespasses and sins" (#Eph 2:1)! If this
were really believed, there would be more dependence upon the Holy Spirit to
come in with his miracle working power, and less confidence in our attempts to "win men for
Christ."
When addressing the unsaved, preachers often draw an analogy
between God's sending of the Gospel to the sinner, and a sick man in bed, with
some healing medicine on a table by his side: all he needs to do is reach forth
his hand and take it. But in order for this illustration to be in any wise true
to the picture which Scripture gives us of the fallen and depraved sinner, the
sick man in bed must be described as one who is blind (#Eph 4:18) so that he
cannot see the medicine, his hand paralysed (#Ro 5:6) so that he
is unable to reach forth for it, and his heart not only devoid of all
confidence in the medicine but filled with hatred against the physician himself
(#Joh
15:18). O what superficial views of man's desperate plight are now
entertained! Christ came here not to help those who were willing to help
themselves, but to do for his people what they were incapable of doing for
themselves: "To open the blind eyes, to bring out the prisoners from the
prison, and them that sit in darkness out of the prison house" (#Isa 42:7).
Now in conclusion let us anticipate and dispose of the usual and
inevitable objection--Why preach the
Gospel if man is powerless to respond?
Why bid the sinner come to Christ if sin has so enslaved him that he has no
power in himself to come? Reply:--We
do not preach the Gospel because we
believe that men are free moral agents, and therefore capable of receiving
Christ, but we preach it because we are
commanded to do so (#Mr 16:15); and
though to them that perish it is foolishness,
yet, "unto us which are saved it is the
power of God" (#1Co 1:18). "The foolishness of God is wiser than men; and the
weakness of God is stronger than men" (#1Co 1:25). The
sinner is dead in trespasses and sins (#Eph 2:1), and a dead
man is utterly incapable of willing anything, hence it is that "they that
are in the flesh (the unregenerate) cannot please God" (#Ro 8:8).
To fleshly wisdom it appears the height of folly to preach the
Gospel to those that are dead, and
therefore beyond the reach of doing
anything themselves. Yes, but God's ways are different from ours. It pleases
God "by the foolishness of preaching
to save them that believe" (#1Co 1:21). Man may
deem it folly to prophesy to "dead
bones" and to say unto them,
"O, ye dry bones, hear the word of the Lord" (#Eze 37:4). Ah! but
then it is the word of the Lord, and
the words he speaks "they are spirit, and
they are life" (#Joh 6:63). Wise men standing by the grave of Lazarus night pronounce it an
evidence of insanity when the Lord addressed a dead man with the words, "Lazarus, Come forth." Ah! but
he who thus spake was and is himself the Resurrection and the Life, and at his word even the dead live! We go forth
to preach the Gospel, then, not because we believe that sinners have within
themselves the power to receive the Saviour it proclaims, but because the
Gospel itself is the power of God unto
salvation to everyone that believeth, and because we know that "as many as
were ordained to eternal life" (#Ac 13:48), shall believe (#Joh 6:37
10:16--note the shall's!) in God's appointed time, for it is written,
"Thy people shall be willing in
the day of thy power" (#Ps 110:3)!
What we have set forth in this chapter is not a product of
"modern thought"; no indeed, it is at direct variance with it. It is
those of the past few generations who have departed
so far from the teachings of their scripturally instructed fathers. In the
thirty nine Articles of the Church of England we read, "The condition of
man after the fall of Adam is such, that he cannot turn and prepare himself by
his own natural strength and good works to faith, and calling upon God:
Wherefore we have no power to do good
works, pleasant and acceptable to God, without the grace of God by Christ
preventing us (being beforehand with us), that we may have a good will, and
working with us, when we have that good will" (Article 10). In the
Westminster Catechism of Faith (adopted by the Presbyterians) we read,
"The sinfulness of that state whereinto man fell, consisteth in the guilt
of Adam's first sin, the wont of that righteousness wherein he was created, and
the corruption of his nature, whereby he is utterly
indisposed, disabled, and made
opposite unto all that is spiritually good, and wholly inclined to all evil, and that continually" (Answer to
question 25). So in the Baptists' Philadelphian Confession of Faith, 1742, we
read, "Man, by his fall into a state of sin, hath wholly lost all ability of will to any spiritual
good accompanying salvation; so as a natural man, being altogether averse from
good, and dead in sin, is not able by his own strength to convert himself, or
to prepare himself thereunto" (Chapter 9).
{a} Since writing the
above we have read an article by the late J. N. Darby entitled, "Man's
so-called freewill", that opens with these words: "This re-appearance
of the doctrine of freewill serves to support that of the pretension of the
natural man to be not irremediably fallen, for this is what such doctrine tends
to. All who have never been deeply convicted of sin, all persons in whom this
conviction is based on gross external sins, believe more or less in
freewill."
Chapter 8 -- God's Sovereignty And
Human Responsibility
"So then every one of us shall
give account of himself to God" (#Ro 14:12).
In our last chapter we considered at some length the much debated
and difficult question of the human will. We have shown that the will of the
natural man is neither sovereign nor free but, instead, a servant and slave. We
have argued that a right conception of the sinner's will--its servitude--is essential to a just
estimate of his depravity and ruin. The utter corruption and degradation of
human nature is something which man hates to acknowledge, and which he will
hotly and insistently deny, until he is "taught of God." Much, very
much, of the unsound doctrine which we now hear on every hand is the direct and
logical outcome of man's repudiation of God's expressed estimate of human
depravity. Men are claiming that they are "increased with goods, and have
need of nothing", and know not that they are "wretched and miserable,
and poor, and blind, and naked" (#Re 3:17). They
prate about the "Ascent of Man", and deny his Fall. They put darkness
for light and light for darkness. They boast of the "free moral agency"
of man when, in fact, he is in bondage to sin and enslaved by
Satan--"taken captive by him at his
will" (#2Ti 2:26). But if the natural man is not
a "free moral agent", does it also follow that he is not accountable?
"Free moral agency" is an expression of human invention
and, as we have said before, to talk of the freedom of the natural man is to
flatly repudiate his spiritual ruin. Nowhere does Scripture speak of the
freedom or moral ability of the sinner, on the contrary, it insists on his moral
and spiritual inability.
This is, admittedly, the most difficult branch of our subject.
Those who have ever devoted much study to this theme have uniformly recognized
that the harmonizing of God's Sovereignty with Man's Responsibility is the
gordian knot of theology.
The main difficulty encountered is to define the relationship between God's sovereignty and man's
responsibility. Many have summarily disposed of the difficulty by denying its
existence. A certain class of theologians, in their anxiety to maintain man's
responsibility, have magnified it beyond all due proportions, until God's
sovereignty has been lost sight of, and in not a few instances flatly denied.
Others have acknowledged that the Scriptures present both the sovereignty of God and the responsibility of man, but
affirm that in our present finite condition and with our limited knowledge it
is impossible to reconcile the two
truths, though it is the bounden duty of the believer to receive both. The
present writer believes that it has been too readily assumed that the Scriptures themselves do not reveal the several
points which show the conciliation of God's sovereignty and man's
responsibility. While perhaps the Word of God does not clear up all the mystery
(and this is said with reserve), it does
throw much light upon the problem, and it seems to us more honouring to God and his Word to prayerfully search the
Scriptures for the more complete solution of the difficulty, and even though
others have thus far searched in vain, that ought only to drive us more and more to our knees. God has
been pleased to reveal many things out of his Word during the last century
which were hidden from earlier students. Who then dare affirm that there is not
much to be learned yet respecting our present inquiry!
As we have said above, our chief difficulty is to determine the meeting
point of God's sovereignty and man's responsibility. To many it has seemed
that for God to assert his
sovereignty, for him to put forth his power and exert a direct
influence upon man, for him to do anything more than warn or invite, would be
to interfere with man's freedom, destroy his responsibility, and reduce him to
a machine. It is sad indeed to find one like the late Dr. Pierson--whose
writings are generally so scriptural and helpful--saying, "It is a
tremendous thought that even God himself cannot control my moral frame, or
constrain my moral choice. He cannot prevent me defying and denying him, and
would not exercise his power in such directions if he could, and could not if
he would" (A Spiritual Clinique). It is sadder still to discover that many
other respected and loved brethren are giving expression to the same
sentiments. Sad, because directly at variance with the Holy Scriptures.
It is our desire to face honestly the difficulties involved, and
to examine them carefully in what light God has been pleased to grant us. The
chief difficulties might be expressed thus: first, How is it possible for God
to so bring his power to bear upon men that they are prevented from doing what they desire to do, and impelled to do other things they do not
desire to do, and yet to preserve their responsibility? Second, how can the
sinner be held responsible for the
doing of what he is unable to do? And
how can he be justly condemned for not
doing what he could not do?
Third, how is it possible for God to
decree that men shall commit
certain sins, hold them responsible
in the committal of them, and condemn them guilty because they committed them? Fourth, how can the sinner be held responsible
to receive Christ, and be damned for rejecting him, when God had foreordained
him to condemnation? We shall now deal with these several problems in the above
order. May the Holy Spirit himself be our Teacher, so that in his light we may
see light.
1. How is it possible for
God to so bring his power to bear upon men that they are prevented from doing
what they desire to do, and impelled to do other things they do not desire to
do, and yet to preserve their responsibility?
It would seem that if God put forth his power and exerted a direct
influence upon men their freedom would be interfered with. It would appear that
if God did anything more than warn
and invite men their responsibility would be infringed upon. We are told that
God must not coerce man, still less compel him, or otherwise he would be
reduced to a machine. This sounds very plausible; it appears to be good
philosophy, and based upon sound reasoning; it has been almost universally
accepted as an axiom in ethics; nevertheless, it is refuted by Scripture!
Let us turn first to #Ge 20:6--"And
God said unto him in a dream, `Yea, I know that thou didst this in the
integrity of thy heart'; for I also withheld
thee from sinning against me: therefore suffered I thee not to touch
her." It is argued, almost universally, that God must not interfere with man's liberty, that he must not coerce or compel him, lest he be reduced to a machine. But
the above scripture proves, unmistakably proves, that it is not impossible for God to exert his power
upon man without destroying his responsibility. Here is a case where God did exert his power, restrict man's
freedom, and prevent him from doing
that which he otherwise would have done.
Ere turning from this scripture, let us note how
it throws light upon the case of the first man. Would be philosophers, who
sought to be wise above that which was written, have argued that God could not have prevented Adam's fall
without reducing him to a mere automaton. They tell us, constantly, that God
must not coerce or compel his creatures, otherwise he would destroy their
accountability. But the answer to all such philosophisings is, that Scripture
records a number of instances where we are expressly told God did prevent certain of his creatures
from sinning both against himself and against his people, in view of which all
men's reasonings are utterly worthless. If God could "withhold"
Abimelech from sinning against him, then why was he unable to do the same with Adam? Should someone ask, "Then why did not God do so?" We might return the question by asking,
"Why did not God `withhold' Satan from falling?" or, "Why did
not God `withhold' the Kaiser from starting the recent War?" The usual
reply is, as we have said, "God could
not without interfering with man's `freedom' and reducing him to a
machine." But the case of Abimelech proves conclusively that such a reply
is untenable and erroneous--we might add wicked
and blasphemous, for who are we to limit the Most High! How dare any finite
creature take it upon him to say what the Almighty can and cannot do? Should we be pressed further as to why God refused to exercise his power and prevent Adam's fall, we should say, Because Adam's fall better
served his own wise and blessed purpose--among other things, it provided an
opportunity to demonstrate that where sin had abounded grace could much more
abound. But we might ask further; why did God place in the garden the tree of
the knowledge of good and evil, when he foresaw
that man would disobey his prohibition and eat of it; for mark, it was God and not Satan who made that
tree. Should someone respond, "Then is God the Author of Sin?" We
would have to ask, in turn, "What is meant by `Author'?" Plainly it
was God's will that sin should enter this world, otherwise it would not have entered, for nothing happens save as God has eternally
decreed. Moreover, there was more than a bare permission, for God only permits that which he has purposed. But we
leave now the origin of sin, insisting once more, however, that God could have "withheld" Adam
from sinning without destroying his
responsibility.
The case
of Abimelech does not stand alone. Another illustration of the same principle
is seen in the history of Balaam,
already noticed in the last chapter, but concerning which a further word is in
place. Balak the Moabite sent for this heathen prophet to "curse"
Israel. A handsome reward was offered for his services, and a careful reading
of #Nu 22:1-24:1-25
will show that Balaam was willing, yea, anxious, to accept Balak's offer and
thus sin against God and his people. But divine power "withheld" him.
Mark his own admission, "And Balaam said unto Balak, Lo, I am come unto
thee: have I now any power at all to say
anything? the word that God putteth in my mouth, that shall I
speak" (#Nu 22:38). Again, after Balak had remonstrated with Balaam, we
read, "He answered and said, Must I not take heed to speak that which the
Lord hath put in my mouth?... Behold, I have received commandment to bless: and
he hath blessed; and I cannot reverse it"
(#Nu 23:12,20).
Surely these verses show us God's power, and Balaam's powerlessness: man's will
frustrated, and God's will performed. But was Balaam's "freedom" or
responsibility destroyed? Certainly not, as we shall yet seek to show.
One more illustration: "And the fear of the Lord fell upon
all the kingdoms of the lands that were round about Judah, so that they made no war
against Jehoshaphat" (#2Ch 17:10). The implication here is clear.
Had not the "fear of the Lord" fallen
upon these kingdoms, they would
have made war upon Judah. God's restraining power alone prevented them. Had their own will been allowed to act,
"war" would have been the consequence. Thus we see that Scripture
teaches that God "withholds" nations as well as individuals, and that
when it pleaseth him to do so he interposes and prevents war. Compare further #Ge 35:5.
The question which now demands our consideration is, how is it
possible for God to "withhold" men from sinning and yet not to
interfere with their liberty and responsibility--a question which so many say
is incapable of solution in our present finite condition. This question causes
us to ask, In what does moral "freedom", real moral freedom, consist? We answer, it is the being delivered from the BONDAGE of sin. The more any soul is emancipated from the thraldom of sin,
the more does he enter into a state of freedom--"If the Son therefore
shall make you free, ye shall be free
indeed" (#Joh 8:36). In the above instances God "withheld" Abimelech,
Balaam, and the heathen kingdoms from
sinning, and therefore we affirm that he did not in anywise interfere with
their real freedom. The nearer a soul
approximates to sinlessness, the nearer does he approach to God's holiness.
Scripture tells us that God "cannot
lie", and that he "cannot
be tempted", but is he any the
less free because he cannot do that
which is evil? Surely not. Then is it not evident that the more man is raised
up to God, and the more he be "withheld" from sinning, the greater is
his real freedom!
A pertinent example setting forth the meeting place of God's sovereignty and man's responsibility, as it
relates to the question of moral freedom, is found in connection with the
giving to us of the Holy Scriptures. In the communication of his Word God was
pleased to employ human instruments, and in the using of them he did not reduce
them to mere mechanical amanuenses: "Knowing this first, that no prophecy
of the Scripture is of any private interpretation (Greek: of its own
origination). For the prophecy came not at any time by the will of man: but
holy men of God spake moved by the Holy
Spirit" (#2Pe 1:20,21). Here we have man's responsibility and God's sovereignty placed
in juxtaposition. These holy men were "moved" (Greek: "borne
along") by the Holy Spirit, yet was not their moral responsibility
disturbed nor their "freedom" impaired. God enlightened their minds,
enkindled their hearts, revealed to them his truth, and so controlled them that error on their part was, by him, made
impossible, as they communicated his mind and will to men. But what was it that
might have, would have, caused error,
had not God controlled as he did the instruments which he employed? The answer
is sin, the sin which was in them. But as we have seen, the holding in check of
sin, the preventing of the exercise of the carnal mind in these "holy
men", was not a destroying of
their "freedom", rather was it the inducting of the into real
freedom.
A final word should be added here concerning the nature of true liberty. There are three chief things
concerning which men in general greatly err: misery and happiness, folly and
wisdom, bondage and liberty. The world counts none miserable but the afflicted, and none happy but the prosperous, because they judge by the
present ease of the flesh. Again; the world is pleased with a false show of
wisdom (which is "foolishness" with God), neglecting that which makes
wise unto salvation. As to liberty, men would be at their own disposal, and
live as they please. They suppose the only true liberty is to be at the command
and under the control of none above themselves, and live according to their
heart's desire. But this is a thraldom and bondage of the worst kind. True
liberty is not the power to live as we please, but to live as we ought! Hence, the only one who has ever
trod this earth since Adam's fall that has enjoyed perfect freedom was the man
Christ Jesus, the Holy Servant of God, whose meat it ever was to do the will of
the Father.
We now turn to consider the question.
2. How Can The Sinner Be
Held Responsible For The Doing Of What He Is Unable To Do? And How Can He Be
Justly Condemned For Not Doing What He Could Not Do?
As a creature the
natural man is responsible to love, obey, and serve God; as a sinner he is responsible to repent and
believe the Gospel. But at the outset we are confronted with the fact that the
natural man is unable to love and
serve God, and that the sinner, of himself, cannot
repent and believe. First, let us prove what we have just said. We begin by
quoting and considering #Joh 6:44, "No man can come
to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him". The heart of the
natural man (every man) is so "desperately wicked" that if he is left
to himself he will never "come to Christ." This statement would not
be questioned if the full force of the words "Coming to Christ" were
properly apprehended. We shall therefore digress a little at this point to
define and consider what is implied and involved in the words "No man can come to
me"--cf. #Joh 5:40, "Ye will not come to
me that ye might have life."
For the sinner to come to Christ that he might have life, is for
him to realize the awful danger of his situation; is for him to see that the
sword of divine justice is suspended over his head; is to awaken to the fact
that there is but a step betwixt him and death, and that after death is the
"judgment"; and in consequence of this discovery, is for him to be in real earnest to escape, and in such earnestness that he shall flee from the wrath to come, cry unto God for mercy, and agonize to enter in at the "strait
gate."
To come to Christ for life, is for the sinner to feel and
acknowledge that he is utterly destitute of any claim upon God's favour; is to
see himself as "without strength", lost and undone; is to admit that
he is deserving of nothing but eternal death, thus taking side with God against
himself; it is for him to cast himself into the dust before God, and humbly sue
for divine mercy.
To come to Christ for life, is for the sinner to
abandon his own righteousness and be ready to be made the righteousness of God
in Christ; it is to disown his own wisdom and be guided by his; it is to
repudiate his own will and be ruled by his; it is to unreservedly receive the
Lord Jesus as his Saviour and Lord, as his All in all.
Such, in
part and in brief, is what is implied and
involved in "Coming to Christ." But is the sinner willing to take
such an attitude before God? No; for
in the first place, he does not realize
the danger of his situation, and in consequence is not in real earnest after
his escape; instead, men are for the most part at ease, and apart from the operations of the Holy Spirit whenever
they are disturbed by the alarms of
conscience or the dispensations of providence, they flee to any other refuge
but Christ. In the second place, they will not acknowledge that all their
righteousnesses are as filthy rags but, like the Pharisee, will thank God they
are not as the Publican. And in the third place, they are not ready to receive
Christ as their Saviour and Lord, for they are unwilling to part with their idols:
they had rather hazard their soul's eternal welfare than give them up. Hence we
say that, left to himself, the natural man is so depraved at heart that he cannot come to Christ.
The
words of our Lord quoted above by no means stand alone. Quite a number of
Scriptures set forth the moral and spiritual inability of the natural man. In #Jos
24:19 we read, "And Joshua said unto the
people, `Ye cannot serve the Lord:
for he is a holy God.'" To the Pharisees Christ said, "Why do ye not
understand my speech? Even because ye
cannot hear my word" (#Joh 8:43). And again:
"The carnal mind is enmity against God: for it is not subject to the law
of God, neither indeed can be. So then they that are in the flesh cannot please God" (#Ro 8:7,8).
But now the question returns, how can God hold the sinner
responsible for failing to do what he is unable
to do? This necessitates a careful definition of terms. Just what is meant by
"unable" and "cannot"?
Now let it be clearly understood that, when we speak of the
sinner's inability, we do not mean
that if men desired to come to Christ they lack the necessary power to carry
out their desire. No; the fact is that the sinner's inability or absence of
power is itself due to lack of willingness to come to Christ,
and this lack of willingness is the fruit of a depraved heart. It is of first
importance that we distinguish between natural
inability and moral and spiritual inability. For example, we read, "But
Ahijah could not see; for his eyes
were set by reason of his age" (#1Ki 14:4); and
again, "The men rowed hard to bring it to the land; but they could not: for the sea wrought, and
was tempestuous against them" (#Jon 1:13). In both
of these passages the words "could not" refer to natural inability. But when we read, "And when his brethren
saw that their father loved him (Joseph) more than all his brethren, they hated
him, and could not speak peaceably
unto him" (#Ge 37:4), it is clearly moral
inability that is in view. They did not lack the natural ability to "speak peaceably unto him", for they
were not dumb. Why then was it that
they "could not speak peaceably unto him"? The answer is given in the
same verse: it was because they hated
him. Again; in #2Pe 2:14 we read of
a certain class of wicked men "having eyes full of adultery, and that cannot cease from sin." Here again
it is moral inability that is in
view. Why is it that these men "cannot cease from sin"? The answer
is, Because their eyes were full of adultery. So of #Ro 8:8--
"They that are in the flesh cannot
please God": here it is spiritual
inability. Why is it that the natural man "cannot please God"?
Because he is "alienated from
the life of God" (#Eph 4:18). No man can choose that from which his heart is averse--"O generation of vipers how can ye, being evil, speak good
things?" (#Mt 12:34). "No man can come
to me, except the Father which hath
sent me draw him" (#Joh 6:44). Here again it is moral
and spiritual inability, which is
before us. Why is it the sinner cannot come to Christ unless he is
"drawn"? The answer is, Because his wicked heart loves sin and hates Christ.
We trust we have made it clear that the Scriptures distinguish
sharply between natural inability and moral and spiritual inability. Surely all
can see the difference between the blindness of Bartimaeus, who was ardently
desirous of receiving his sight, and the Pharisees, whose eyes were closed,
"lest at any time they should see with their eyes, and hear with their
ears, and should understand with their heart, and should be converted" (#Mt 13:15). But
should it be said, "The natural man could
come to Christ if he wished to do
so", we answer, "Ah! but in that IF lies the hinge of the whole
matter." The inability of the sinner consists of the want of moral power to
wish and will so as to actually perform.
What we have contended for above is of first importance. Upon the
distinction between the sinner's natural Ability, and his moral and spiritual
Inability, rests his Responsibility.
The depravity of the human heart does not destroy man's accountability to God;
so far from this being the case the very moral inability of the sinner only
serves to increase his guilt. This is
easily proven by a reference to the scriptures cited above. We read that
Joseph's brethren "could not speak peaceably unto him", and why? It
was because they "hated" him. But was this moral inability of theirs
any excuse? Surely not: in this very moral inability consisted the greatness of
their sin. So of those concerning whom it is said, "They cannot cease from
sin" (#2Pe 2:14), and why? Because "their eyes were full of adultery",
but that only made their case worse. It was a real fact that they could not
cease from sin, yet this did not excuse them--it only made their sin the
greater.
Should some sinner here object, I cannot help being born into this
world with a depraved heart, and therefore I am not responsible for my moral
and spiritual inability which accrue from it, the reply would be, Responsibility
and Culpability lie in the indulgence
of the depraved propensities, the free
indulgence, for God does not force any to
sin. Men might pity me, but they certainly would not excuse me if I gave
vent to a fiery temper, and then sought to extenuate myself on the ground of
having inherited that temper from my
parents. Their own common sense is sufficient to guide their judgment in such a
case as this. They would argue I was responsible to restrain my temper. Why
then cavil against this same principle in the case supposed above? "Out of
thine own mouth will I judge thee
thou wicked servant" surely applies here! What would the reader say to a
man who had robbed him, and who later argued in defence, "I cannot help
being a thief, that is my nature"? Surely the reply would be, "Then
the penitentiary is the proper place for that man". What then shall be
said to the one who argues that he cannot help following the bent of his sinful
heart? Surely, that the Lake of Fire is where such an one must go. Did ever murderer plead that he hated his
victim so much that he could not go
near him without slaying him. Would
not that only magnify the enormity of his crime! Then what of the one who loves
sin so much that he is "at enmity against God"!
The fact of man's
responsibility is almost universally acknowledged. It is inherent in man's
moral nature. It is not only taught in Scripture but witnessed to by the
natural conscience. The basis or
ground of human responsibility is human ability.
What is implied by this general term "ability" must now be defined. Perhaps
a concrete example will be more easily grasped by the average reader than an
abstract argument.
Suppose a man owed me $100 and could find plenty of money for his
own pleasures but none for me, yet pleaded that he was unable to pay me. What would I say? I would say that the only
ability that was lacking was an honest
heart. But would it not be an unfair construction of my words if a friend
of my dishonest debtor should say I had stated that an honest heart was that
which constituted the ability to pay
the debt? No; I would reply: the ability of my debtor lies in the power of his
hand to write me a cheque, and this he
has, but what is lacking is an honest
principle. It is his power to write me a cheque which makes him responsible
to do so, and the fact that he lacks an honest heart does not destroy his
accountability. {a}
Now, in like manner, the sinner while altogether lacking in moral
and spiritual ability does,
nevertheless, possess natural
ability, and this it is which renders him accountable unto God. Men have the
same natural faculties to love God
with as they have to hate him with, the same hearts to believe with which they
disbelieve, and it is their failure
to love and believe which constitutes their guilt. An idiot or an infant is not
personally responsible to God, because lacking
in natural ability. But the normal
man who is endowed with rationality, who is gifted with a conscience that is
capable of distinguishing between right and wrong, who is able to weigh eternal issues
IS a responsible being, and it is because he does possess these very faculties that he will yet have to
"give account of himself to God" (#Ro 14:12).
We say again that the above distinction between
the natural ability and the moral and spiritual inability of the sinner is of
prime importance. By nature he possesses natural ability but lacks moral and spiritual ability. The
fact that he does not possess the
latter, does not destroy his
responsibility, because his responsibility rests upon the fact that he does possess the former. Let me
illustrate again. Here are two men guilty of theft: the first is an idiot, the
second perfectly sane but the offspring of criminal parents. No just judge
would sentence the former; but every right minded judge would the latter. Even
though the second of these thieves possessed a vitiated moral nature inherited
from criminal parents, that would not excuse
him, providing he was a normal rational
being. Here then is the ground of human accountability--the
possession of rationality plus the gift of conscience. It is because the sinner
is endowed with these natural
faculties that he is a responsible
creature; because he does not use his
natural powers for God's glory, constitutes his guilt.
How can
it remain consistent with his mercy that God should require the debt of
obedience from him that is not able to pay? In addition to what has been said
above, it should be pointed out that God has not lost his right, even though man has lost his power. The creature's impotence does not cancel his obligation. A
drunken servant is a servant still, and it is contrary to all sound reasoning
to argue that his master loses his rights through his servant's default.
Moreover, it is of first importance that we should ever bear in mind that God
contracted with us in Adam, who was our federal head and representative, and in
him, God gave us a power which we lost through our first parent's fall; but
though our power be gone, nevertheless, God may justly demand his due of
obedience and of service.
We turn
now to ponder,
3. How Is It Possible For God To Decree That
Men Should Commit Certain Sins, Hold Them Responsible In The Committal Of Them,
And Adjudge Them Guilty Because They Committed Them?
Let us
now consider the extreme case of Judas. We hold that it is clear from Scripture
that God decreed from all eternity
that Judas should betray the Lord Jesus. If anyone should challenge this
statement we refer him to the prophecy of Zechariah, through whom God declared
that his Son should be sold for "thirty pieces of silver" (#Zec 11:12). As we have
said in earlier pages, in prophecy God makes known what will be, and in making
known what will be, he is but revealing to us what he has ordained shall be. That Judas was the one through
whom the prophecy of Zechariah was fulfilled needs not to be argued. But now
the question we have to face is, Was Judas a responsible agent in fulfilling this decree of God? We reply that
he was. Responsibility attaches mainly to the motive and intention of
the one committing the act. This is recognised on every hand. Human law
distinguishes between a blow inflicted by accident (without evil design), and a
blow delivered with "malice
aforethought." Apply then this same principle to the case of Judas.
What was the deign of his heart when
he bargained with the priests? Manifestly he had no conscious desire to fulfil any decree of God, though unknown
to himself he was actually doing so. On the contrary, his intention was evil only, and therefore, though God had decreed
and directed his act, nevertheless, his
own evil intention rendered him justly guilty
as he afterwards acknowledged himself--"I have betrayed innocent blood."
It was the same with the crucifixion of Christ. Scripture plainly
declares that he was "delivered up by
the determinate counsel and
foreknowledge of God" (#Ac 2:23), and that though "the kings of the earth stood up,
and the rulers were gathered together against the Lord, and against his
Christ" yet, notwithstanding, it was but "for to do whatsoever thy
hand and thy counsel determined before to
be done" (#Ac 4:26,28); which verses teach very much more than a bare permission by God, declaring, as they
do, that the crucifixion and all its details had been decreed by God. Yet, nevertheless, it was by "wicked hands",
not merely "human hands", that our Lord was "crucified and
slain" (#Ac 2:23).
"Wicked" because the intention
of his crucifiers was only evil.
But it might be objected that, if God had decreed that Judas should betray Christ, and that the Jews
and Gentiles should crucify him, they
could not do otherwise, and therefore, they were not responsible for their
intentions. The answer is, God had decreed that they should perform the acts they did, but in the actual
perpetration of these deeds they were
justly guilty, because their own purposes in the doing of them
was evil only. Let it be emphatically said that God does not produce the sinful dispositions of any
of his creatures, though he does restrain
and direct them to the accomplishing
of his own purposes. Hence he is neither the Author nor the Approver of sin.
This distinction was expressed thus by Augustine: "That men sin proceeds
from themselves; that in sinning they perform this or that action, is from the
power of God who divideth the darkness according to his pleasure." Thus it
is written, "A man's heart deviseth his way: but the Lord directeth his steps" (#Pr 16:9). What we
would here insist upon is, that God's decrees are not the necessitating cause of the sins of men, but the foredetermined and
prescribed boundings and directings of men's sinful acts. In
connection with the betrayal of Christ, God did not decree that he should be
sold by one of his creatures and then take up a good man, instill an evil
desire into his heart and thus force him to perform the terrible deed in order to execute his decree. No; not so do the Scriptures represent it.
Instead, God decreed the act and selected the one who was to perform the act,
but he did not make him evil in order
that he should perform the deed; on
the contrary, the betrayer was a "devil" at the time the Lord Jesus
chose him as one of the twelve (#Joh 6:70), and in
the exercise and manifestation of his own
devilry God simply directed his
actions, actions which were perfectly agreeable
to his own vile heart, and performed
with the most wicked intentions. Thus
it was with the crucifixion.
IV. How Can The Sinner Be Held Responsible To Receive Christ, And
Be Damned For Rejecting Him, When God Foreordained Him To
Condemnation?
Really, this question has been covered in what has been said under
the other queries, but for the benefit of those who are exercised upon this
point we give it a separate, though brief, examination. In considering the
above difficulty the following points should be carefully weighed:
In the first place, no sinner, while he is in this world, knows
for certain, nor can he know, that he
is a "vessel of wrath fitted to destruction". This belongs to the
hidden counsels of God, to which he has not access. God's secret will is no business of his; God's revealed will (in the Word) is the standard of human
responsibility. And God's revealed
will is plain. Each sinner is among those whom God now "commandeth to
repent" (#Ac 17:30). Each sinner who hears the Gospel is "commanded" to
believe (#1Jo 3:23). And all who do truly
repent and believe are saved. Therefore, is every sinner responsible to repent and believe.
In the second place it is the duty
of every sinner to search the Scriptures which "are able to make wise unto
salvation" (#2Ti 3:15). It is the sinner's "duty" because the Son of God has commanded him to search the Scriptures (#Joh 5:39). If he
searches them with a heart that is seeking after God, then does he put himself
in the way where God is accustomed to meet with sinners. Upon this point the
Puritan Manton has written very helpfully.
"I cannot say to every one that ploweth, infallibly, that he
shall have a good crop; but this I can say to him, `It is God's use to bless
the diligent and provident'. I cannot say to every one that desireth posterity,
`Marry, and you shall have children'; I cannot say infallibly to him that goeth
forth to battle for his country's good that he shall have victory and success;
but I can say, as Joab, (#1Ch 19:13) 'Be of good courage, and let us behave ourselves valiantly for
our people and the cities of our God, and let the Lord do what is good in his
sight'. I cannot say infallibly you shall have grace; but I can say to every
one, `Let him use the means, and leave
the success of his labour and his own
salvation to the will and good pleasure of God'. I cannot say this
infallibly, for there is no obligation upon God. And still this work is made
the fruit of God's will and mere arbitrary dispensation--`Of his own will begat
he us by the Word of Truth' (#Jas 1:18). Let us do what God hath
commanded, and let God do what he will. And I need not say so; for the whole
world in all their actings are and should be guided by this principle. Let us
do our duty, and refer the success to God, Whose ordinary practice it is to
meet with the creature that seeketh after him; yea, he is with us already; this
earnest importunity in the use of means proceeding from the earnest impression
of his grace. And therefore, since he is beforehand with us, and hath not
showed any backwardness to our good, we have no reason to despair of his
goodness and mercy, but rather to hope for the best" (Vol. XXI, page 312).
God has been pleased to give to men the Holy Scriptures which
"testify" of the Saviour, and make known the way of salvation. Every
sinner has the same natural faculties
for the reading of the Bible as he has for the reading of the newspaper; and if
he is illiterate or blind so that he is unable to read, he has the same mouth
with which to ask a friend to read the Bible to him, as he has to enquire
concerning other matters. If, then, God has given to men his Word, and in that
Word has made known the way of salvation, and if men are commanded to search
those Scriptures which are able to make them wise unto salvation, and they refuse to do so, then is it plain that
they are justly censurable, that
their blood lies on their own heads,
and that God can righteously cast
them into the Lake of Fire.
In the third place, should it be objected,
"Admitting all you have said above, is it not still a fact that each of
the non-elect is unable to repent and
believe?" The reply is, "Yes". Of every sinner it is a fact
that, of himself, he cannot come to
Christ. And from God's side the "cannot" is absolute. But we are now
dealing with the responsibility of
the sinner (the sinner foreordained to condemnation, though he knows it not), and from the human side the inability of the sinner
is a moral one, as previously pointed
out. Moreover, it needs to be borne in mind that in addition to the moral inability of the sinner there is a
voluntary inability, too. The sinner
must be regarded not only as impotent to do good, but as delighting in evil. From the human
side, then, the "cannot" is a will
not; it is a voluntary impotence.
Man's impotence lies in his obstinacy. Hence, is everyone left "without
excuse", And hence, is God "clear" when he judgeth (#Ps 51:4), and righteous
in damning all who "love
darkness rather than light".
That God does require
what is beyond our own power to render is clear from many scriptures. God gave the Law to Israel at Sinai and demanded
a full compliance with it, and solemnly pointed out what would be the
consequences of their disobedience (see #De 28:1-68). But will
any readers be so foolish as to affirm that Israel were capable of fully obeying the Law! If they do, we would refer
them to #Ro 8:3 where we are expressly told, "For what the law could not do, in that, it was weak
through the flesh, God sending his own Son in the likeness of sinful flesh, and
for sin, condemned sin in the flesh".
Come now to the New Testament. Take such passages as #Mt 5:48, "Be
ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect." #1Co 15:34,
"Awake to righteousness and sin not." #1Jo 2:1, "My
little children, these things I write unto you, that ye sin not". Will any
reader say he is capable in himself
of complying with these demands of
God? If so, it is useless for us to argue with him.
But now the question arises, Why has God demanded of man that
which he is incapable of performing?
The first answer is, Because God refuses to lower his standard to the level of
our sinful infirmities. Being perfect, God must set a perfect standard before
us. Still we must ask, if man is incapable of measuring up to God's standard, wherein lies his responsibility? Difficult as seems the problem it is nevertheless
capable of a simple and satisfactory solution. Man is responsible to (1st) acknowledge before God his inability,
and (2nd) to cry unto him for
enabling grace. Surely this will be admitted by every Christian reader. It is
my bound duty to own before God my ignorance, my weakness, my sinfulness, my
impotence to comply with his holy and
just requirements. It is also my bounden duty, as well as blessed privilege, to
earnestly beseech God to give me the wisdom, strength, grace, which will enable me to do that which is pleasing
in his sight; to ask him to work in me
"both to will and to do of his good pleasure" (#Php 2:13).
In like manner, the sinner, every sinner, is responsible to call upon
the Lord. Of himself he can neither repent nor believe. He can neither come to
Christ, nor turn from his sins. God tells
him so; and his first duty is to "set to his seal that God is true".
His second duty is to cry unto God
for his enabling power--to ask God in mercy to overcome his enmity, and
"draw" him to Christ; to bestow upon him the gifts of repentance and
faith. If he will do so, sincerely
from the heart, then most surely God will
respond to his appeal, for it is written--"For whosoever shall call upon
the name of the Lord shall be saved" (#Ro 10:13).
Suppose, I had slipped on the icy pavement, late at night, and had
broken my hip. I am unable to arise;
if I remain on the ground, I must freeze to death. What, then, ought I to do?
If I am determined to perish, I shall lie there silent--but I shall be to blame
for such a course. If I am anxious to be rescued, I shall lift up my voice and cry for
help. So the sinner, though unable
of himself to rise and take the first step toward Christ, is responsible to cry to God,
and if he does (from the heart), there is a deliverer to help. God is "not
far from every one of us" (#Ac 17:27); yea,
"He is a very present help in
trouble" (#Ps 46:1). But if the sinner refuses
to cry unto the Lord, if he is determined to perish, then his blood is on his
own head, and his "damnation is just" (#Ro 3:8).
A brief word now concerning the extent of human responsibility.
It is obvious that the measure
of human responsibility varies in
different cases, and is greater or less with particular individuals. The
standard of measurement was given in the Saviour's words, "For unto
whomsoever much is given, of him shall much be required" (#Lu 12:48). Surely
God did not require as much from those living in Old Testament times as he does
from those who have been born during the Christian dispensation. Surely God
will not require as much from those who lived during the "dark ages",
when the Scriptures were accessible to but a few, as he will from those of this
generation, when practically every family in the land own a copy of his Word
for themselves. In the same way, God will not demand from the heathen what he
will from those in Christendom. The heathen will not perish because they have
not believed in Christ, but because they failed to live up to the light which
they did have--the testimony of God in nature and conscience.
To sum up. The fact of
man's responsibility rests upon his natural ability, is witnessed to by
conscience, and is insisted on throughout the Scriptures. The ground of man's responsibility is that
he is a rational creature capable of weighing eternal issues, and that he
possesses a written revelation from God, in which his relationship with and
duty toward his creator is plainly defined. The measure of responsibility varies in different individuals, being
determined by the degree of light each has enjoyed from God. The problem of human responsibility receives
at least a partial solution in the Holy Scriptures, and it is our solemn
obligation as well as privilege to search them prayerfully and carefully for
further light, looking to the Holy Spirit to guide us "into all truth." It is written,
"The meek will he guide in
judgment: and the meek will he teach
his way" (#Ps 25:9).
In conclusion it remains to point out that it is the
responsibility of every man to use the means which God has placed to his hand.
An attitude of fatalistic inertia, because I know that God has irrevocably
decreed whatsoever comes to pass, is to make a sinful and hurtful use of what
God has revealed for the comfort of my heart. The same God who has decreed that
a certain end shall be accomplished, has also decreed that that end shall be
attained through and as the result of his own appointed means. God does not
disdain the use of means, nor must I. For example: God has decreed that
"while the earth remaineth, seedtime and harvest...shall not cease" (#Ge 8:22); but that
does not mean man's ploughing of the ground and sowing of the seed are
needless. No; God moves men to do
those very things, blesses their labours, and so fulfils his own ordination. In
like manner, God has, from the beginning, chosen a people unto salvation; but
that does not mean there is no need for evangelists to preach the Gospel, or
for sinners to believe it; it is by
such means that his eternal counsels are effectuated.
To argue that, because God has irrevocably determined the eternal
destiny of every man, relieves us of all responsibility for any concern about
our souls, or any diligent use of the means to salvation, would be on a par
with refusing to perform my temporal
duties because God has fixed my earthly lot. And that he has is clear from #Ac 17:26, #Job 7:1 14:5, etc. If
then the foreordination of God may consist with the respective: activities of
man in present concerns, why not in the future? What God has joined together we
must not cut asunder. Whether we can or cannot see the link which unites the
one to the other, our duty is plain: "The secret things belong unto the
Lord our God: but those things which are revealed belong unto us and to our
children forever, that we may do all
the words of this law" (#De 29:29).
In #Ac 27:22 God made known that he had ordained the temporal preservation of
all who accompanied Paul in the ship; yet the apostle did not hesitate to say,
"Except these abide in the ship, ye cannot be saved" (#Ac 27:31); God
appointed that means for the execution of what he had decreed. From #2Ki 20:1-11 we learn
that God was absolutely resolved to add fifteen years to Hezekiah's life, yet he must take a lump of figs and lay it
on his boil! Paul knew that he was eternally secure in the hand of Christ (#Joh 10:28), yet he
"kept under his body" (#1Co 9:26). The
apostle John assured those to whom he wrote, "Ye shall abide in him", yet in the very next verse he exhorted
them, "And now, little children, abide
in him" (#1Jo 2:27,28). It is only by taking heed to this vital principle, that we are
responsible to use the means of God's
appointing, that we shall be enabled to preserve the balance of Truth, and be saved from a paralysing fatalism.
{a} The terms of this
example are suggested by an illustration used by the late Andrew Fuller.
Chapter 9 --
God's Sovereignty And Prayer
"If we ask anything according to his will he heareth us"
(#1Jo 5:14).
Throughout this book it has been our chief aim to exalt the
Creator and abase the creature. The well nigh universal tendency, now, is to
magnify man and dishonour and degrade God. On every hand it will be found that,
when spiritual things are under discussion, the human side and clement is
pressed and stressed, and the divine side, if not altogether ignored, is
relegated to the background. This holds true of very much of the modern
teaching about prayer. In the great majority of the books written and in the
sermons preached upon prayer, the human element fills the scene almost
entirely: it is the conditions which we
must meet, the promises we must
"claim", the things we must
do, in order to get our requests granted; and God's claims, God's
rights, God's glory are disregarded.
As a fair sample of what is being given out today we sub-join a
brief editorial which appeared recently in one of the leading religious
weeklies entitled "Prayer, or Fate?"
"God in his sovereignty has ordained that human destinies may
be changed and moulded by the will of man. This is at the heart of the truth
that prayer changes things, meaning that God changes things when men pray. Some
one has strikingly expressed it this way: 'There are certain things that will
happen in a man's life whether he prays or not. There are other things that
will happen if he prays, and will not happen if he does not pray'. A Christian
worker was impressed by these sentences as he entered a business office, and he
prayed that the Lord would open the way to speak to some one about Christ,
reflecting that things would be changed because he prayed. Then his mind turned
to other things and the prayer was forgotten. The opportunity came to speak to
the business man on whom he was calling, but he did not grasp it, and was on
his way out when he remembered his prayer of half hour before, and God's
answer. He promptly returned and had a talk with the business man, who, though
a church member, had never in his life been asked whether he was saved. Let us
give ourselves to prayer, and open the way for God to change things. Let us
beware lest we become virtual fatalists by failing to exercise our God given
wills in praying".
The above illustrates what is now being taught on the subject of
prayer, and the deplorable thing is that scarcely a voice is lifted in protest.
To say that "human destinies may be
changed and moulded by the will of
man" is rank infidelity--that is the only proper term for it. Should
any one challenge this classification, we would ask them whether they can find
an infidel anywhere who would dissent from such a statement, and we are
confident that such an one could not be found. To say that "God has ordained
that human destinies may be changed and moulded by the will of man", is
absolutely untrue. "Human destiny" is settled not by "the will of man", but by the will of God. That
which determines human destiny is whether or not a man has been born again, for
it is written, "Except a man be born again he cannot see the kingdom of
God". And as to whose will,
whether God's or man's, is responsible for the new birth is settled,
unequivocally, by #Joh 1:13 --"Which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the
flesh, nor of the will of man, but OF GOD". To say that "human
destiny" may be changed by the
will of man, is to make the creature's will supreme,
and that is, virtually, to dethrone God.
But what saith the Scriptures? Let the book answer: "The Lord killeth, and
maketh alive: he bringeth down to the
grave, and bringeth up. The Lord maketh poor, and maketh rich: he bringeth low, and lifteth up. He raiseth up the poor out of the dust,
and lifteth up the beggar from the dunghill, to set them among princes, and to
make them inherit the throne of glory" (#1Sa 2:6-8).
Turning back to the Editorial here under review, we are next told,
"This is at the heart of the truth that prayer changes things, meaning
that God changes things when men pray." Almost everywhere we go today one
comes across a motto card bearing the inscription "Prayer Changes
Things". As to what these words are designed to signify is evident from
the current literature on prayer--we
are to persuade God to change his
purpose. Concerning this we shall have more to say below.
Again, the Editor tells us, "Some one has strikingly
expressed it this way: 'There are certain things that will happen in a man's
life whether he prays or not. There are other things that will happen if he prays,
anal will not happen if he does not pray'." That things happen whether a man
prays or not is exemplified daily in the lives of the unregenerate, most of
whom never pray at all. That "other things will happen if he prays"
is in need of qualification. If a believer prays in faith and asks for those
things which are according to God's will, he will most certainly obtain that
for which he has asked. Again, that other things will happen if he prays, is
also true in respect to the subjective benefits derived from prayer: God will
become more real to him and his promises more precious. That other things
"will not happen if he does not pray" is true so far as his own life
is concerned--a prayerless life means a life lived out of communion with God
and all that is involved by this. But to affirm that God will not and cannot
bring to pass his eternal purpose unless we pray, is utterly erroneous, for the
same God who has decreed the end has also decreed that his end shall be reached
through his appointed means, and one of these is prayer. The God who has
determined to grant a blessing, also gives a spirit of supplication which first
seeks the blessing.
The example cited in the above Editorial of the Christian worker
and the business man is a very unhappy one to say the least, for according to
the terms of the illustration the Christian worker's prayer was not answered by
God at all, in as much as, apparently, the way was not opened to speak to the
business man about his soul. But on leaving the office and recalling his prayer
the Christian worker (perhaps in the energy of the flesh) determined to answer
the prayer for himself, and instead
of leaving the Lord to "open the
way" for him, took matters into
his own hand.
We quote next from one of the latest books issued on Prayer. In it
the author says, "The possibilities and necessity of prayer, its power and
results, are manifested in arresting and changing
the purposes of God and in
relieving the stroke of his power". Such an assertion as this is a
horrible reflection upon the character of the Most High God, who "doeth
according to his will in the army of heaven, and among the inhabitants of the
earth: and none can stay, his hand,
or say unto him, What doest thou?" (#Da 4:35). There is no need whatever for God to change his designs or alter his purpose, for the all
sufficient reason that these were framed under the influence of perfect
goodness and unerring wisdom. Men may
have occasion to alter their
purposes, for in their short sightedness they are frequently unable to
anticipate what may arise after their
plans are formed. But not so with God, for he knows the end from the beginning.
To affirm that God changes his
purpose is either to impugn his goodness or to deny his eternal wisdom.
In the same book we are told, "The prayers of God's saints
are the capital stock in heaven by which Christ carries on his great work upon
earth. The great throes and mighty convulsions on earth are the results of
these prayers. Earth is changed, revolutionized, angels move on more powerful,
more rapid wing, and God's policy is
shaped as the prayers are more numerous, more efficient". If possible,
this is even worse, and we have no hesitation in denominating it as blasphemy.
In the first place, it flatly denies #Eph 3:11, which
speaks of God's having an "eternal
purpose". If God's purpose is an eternal one, then his "policy"
is not being "shaped"
today. In the second place, it contradicts #Eph 1:11 which
expressly declares that God "worketh all
things after the counsel of his own
will", therefore it follows that, "God's policy" is not being "shaped" by man's prayers.
In the third place, such a statement as the above makes the will of the
creature supreme, for if our prayers
shape God's policy, then is the Most
High subordinate to worms of the earth. Well might the Holy Spirit ask through
the apostle, "For who hath known the mind of the Lord? or who hath
been his counsellor?" (#Ro 11:34).
Such thoughts on prayer as we have been citing are due to low, and
inadequate conceptions of God himself. It ought to be apparent that there could
be little or no comfort in praying to a God that was like the chameleon, which
changes its colour every day. What encouragement is there to lift up our hearts
to one who is in one mind yesterday and another today? What would be the use of
petitioning an earthly monarch, if we knew he was so mutable as to grant a
petition one day and deny it another? Is it not the very unchangeableness of God which is our greatest encouragement to pray? It is because he is "without variableness or shadow of
turning" we are assured that if we ask anything according to his will we
are most certain of being heard. Well did Luther remark, "Prayer is not
overcoming God's reluctance, but laying hold of his willingness."
And this leads us to offer a few remarks concerning the design of prayer. Why, has God appointed that we should pray? The vast majority of
people would reply, In order that we may obtain from God the things which we
need. While this is one of the
purposes of prayer, it is by no means the chief one. Moreover, it considers
prayer only from the human side, and
prayer sadly needs to be viewed from the divine
side. Let us look, then, at some of the reasons why God has bidden us to pray.
First and foremost, prayer has been appointed
that the Lord God himself should be honoured.
God requires we should recognize that he is, indeed, "the high and lofty One that inhabiteth eternity" (#Isa
57:15). God requires that we shall own his universal dominion: in petitioning God for rain, Elijah did but confess his
control over the elements; in praying to God to deliver a poor sinner from the
wrath to come, we acknowledge that "salvation is of the Lord" (#Joh 2:9); in supplicating
his blessing on the Gospel unto the uttermost parts of the earth, we declare
his rulership over the whole world.
Again; God requires that we shall worship him, and prayer, real prayer, is an act of worship. Prayer
is an act of worship in as much as it is the prostrating of the soul before
him; in as much as it is a calling upon his great and holy name; in as much as
it is the owning of his goodness, his power, his immutability, his grace, and
in as much as it is the recognition of his sovereignty, owned by a submission
to his will. It is highly significant to notice in this connection that the
temple was not termed by Christ the House of Sacrifice, but instead, the House
of Prayer.
Again; prayer redounds to
God's glory, for in prayer we do but acknowledge our dependency upon him.
When we humbly supplicate the Divine Being we cast ourselves upon his power and
mercy. In seeking blessings from God we own that he is the Author and Fountain
of every good and perfect gift. That prayer brings glory to God is further seen
from the fact that prayer calls faith into exercise, and nothing from us is so
honouring and pleasing to him as the confidence of our hearts.
In the second place, prayer is appointed by God for our spiritual blessing, as a means for our
growth in grace. When seeking to learn the design of prayer, this should ever occupy us before we regard prayer as a means for obtaining the supply of our
need. Prayer is designed by God for our humbling.
Prayer, real prayer, is a coming into the presence of God, and a sense of his
awful majesty produces a realization of our nothingness and unworthiness.
Again; prayer is designed by God for the
exercise of our faith. Faith is begotten in the Word (#Ro 10:17), but it is
exercised in prayer; hence, we lead of "the prayer of faith". Again;
prayer calls love into action. Concerning the hypocrite the question is asked,
"Will he delight himself in the Almighty? Will he always call upon
God?" (#Job 27:10). But they that love the Lord cannot be long away from him, for
they delight in unburdening
themselves to him. Not only does prayer call love into action, but through the
direct answers vouchsafed to our prayers, our love to God is increased--"I
love the Lord, because he hath heard
my voice and my supplications" (#Ps 116:1). Again;
prayer signed by God to teach us the value
of the blessings we have sought from him, and it causes us to rejoice the more
when he has bestowed upon us that for
which we supplicate him.
Third, prayer is appointed by God for our seeking from him the
things which we are in need of. But here a difficulty may present itself to
those who have read carefully the previous chapters of this book. If God has
foreordained, before the foundation of the world, everything which happens in
time, what is the use of prayer? If it is true that "of him and through
him and to him are all things" (#Ro 11:36), then why
pray? Ere replying directly to these queries it should be pointed out how that
there is just as much reason to ask, What is the use of me coming to God and
telling him what he already knows? wherein is the use of me spreading before
him my need, seeing he is already acquainted with it? as there is to object,
What is the use of praying for anything when everything has been ordained
beforehand by God? Prayer is not for the purpose of informing God, as if he
were ignorant, (the Saviour expressly declared "for your Father knoweth
what things ye have need of, before ye ask him"--#Mt 6:8), but it is
to acknowledge he does know what we
are in need of. Prayer is not appointed for the furnishing of God with the
knowledge of what we need, but it is designed as a confession to him of our sense of the need. In this, as in
everything, God's thoughts are not as ours. God requires that his gifts should
be sought for. He designs to be honoured
by our asking, just as he is to be thanked
by us after he has bestowed his blessing.
However, the question still returns on us, If God be the
predestinator of everything that comes to pass, and the regulator of all
events, then is not prayer a profitless exercise? A sufficient answer to these
questions is, that God bids us to pray--"Pray without ceasing" (#1Th 5:17). And
again, "men ought always to
pray" (#Lu 18:1). And further: Scripture declares that, "the prayer of faith
shall save the sick", and, "the effectual fervent prayer of a
righteous man availeth much" (#Jas 5:15,16); while the
Lord Jesus Christ--our perfect example in all things--was preeminently a Man of
Prayer. Thus, it is evident, that prayer is neither meaningless nor valueless.
But still this does not remove the
difficulty nor answer the question
with which we started out. What then is the relationship
between God's sovereignty and Christian prayer?
First of all, we would say with emphasis, that prayer is not intended to change God's purpose, nor is it to move him to form fresh
purposes. God has decreed that certain events shall come to pass, but he has also decreed that these events shall
come to pass through the means he has appointed for their accomplishment. God
has elected certain ones to be saved, but he has also decreed that these ones
shall be saved through the preaching
of the Gospel. The Gospel, then, is one of the appointed means for the working
out of the eternal counsel of the Lord; and prayer is another. God has decreed
the means as well as the end, and among the means is prayer. Even the prayers
of his people are included in his eternal decrees. Therefore, instead of
prayers being in vain, they are among the means through which God exercises his
decrees. "If indeed all things happen by a blind chance, or a fatal
necessity, prayers in that case could be of no moral efficacy, and of no use;
but since they are regulated by the direction of Divine wisdom, prayers have a
place in the order of events" (Haldane).
That prayers for the execution of the very things decreed by God are not meaningless, is clearly taught in the Scriptures. Elijah knew that God was about to give rain, but that did not prevent him from at once
betaking himself to prayer, (#Jas 5:17,18). Daniel "understood" by
the writings of the prophets that the captivity was to last but seventy years,
yet when these seventy years were almost ended, we are told that he "set
his face unto the Lord God, to seek
by prayer and supplications, with fasting and sackcloth and ashes" (#Da 9:2,3). God told
the prophet Jeremiah "For I know the thoughts that I think toward you,
saith the Lord, thoughts of peace, and not of evil, to give you an expected
end"; but instead of adding, there is, therefore, no need for you to
supplicate me for these things, he said, "Then
shall ye call upon me, and ye shall go and pray unto me, and I will hearken
unto you" (#Jer 29:12).
Once more; in #Eze 36:1-38 read of the explicit, positive, and
unconditional promises which God has made concerning the future restoration of
Israel, yet in #Eze 36:37 of this same chapter we are told, "Thus saith the Lord God; I will yet for this be enquired of by
the house of Israel, to do it for them"! Here then is the design of prayer: not that God's will may be altered, but that it may be accomplished in his own good time and
way. It is because God has promised
certain things, that we can ask for them with the full assurance of faith. It
is God's purpose that his will shall be brought about by his own appointed
means and that he may do his people good upon his own terms, and that is, by the "means" and
"terms" of entreaty and supplication. Did not the Son of God know for certain that after his death
and resurrection he would be exalted
by the Father? Assuredly he did. Yet we find him asking for this very thing: "O Father, glorify thou me with
thine own self with the glory which I had with thee before the world was"
(#Joh
17:5)! Did not he know that none of his people could perish? Yet he
besought the Father to "keep" them (#Joh 17:11)!
Finally; it should be said that God's will is immutable, and
cannot be altered by our cryings. When the mind of God is not toward a people
to do them good, it cannot be turned to them by the most fervent and
importunate prayers of those who have the greatest interest in him--"Then
said the Lord unto me, `Though Moses and Samuel stood before me, yet my mind could not be toward this
people: cast them out of my sight, and let them go forth'" (#Jer 15:1). The
prayers of Moses to enter the promised land is a parallel case.
Our views respecting prayer need to be revised and brought into
harmony with the teaching of Scripture on the subject. The prevailing idea
seems to be, that I come to God and ask
him for something that I want, and that I expect
him to give me that which I have asked. But this is a most dishonouring and
degrading conception. The popular belief reduces God to a servant, our servant: doing our bidding,
performing our pleasure, granting our desires. No; prayer is a coming to God,
telling him my need, committing my
way unto the Lord, and leaving him to deal with it as seemeth him best. This makes my will subject to his, instead of, as in the former
case, seeking to bring his will into subjection to mine. No prayer is pleasing
to God unless the spirit actuating it is, "not
my will, but thine be done". "When God bestows blessings on a praying
people, it is not for the sake of their prayers, as if he was inclined and
turned by them; but it is for his own sake, and of his own sovereign will and
pleasure. Should it be said, to what purpose then is prayer? It is answered,
`This is the way and means God has appointed, for the communication of the
blessing of his goodness to his people.' For though he has purposed, provided,
and promised them, yet he will be sought unto, to give them, and it is a duty
and privilege to ask. When they are blessed with a spirit of prayer, it
forebodes well, and looks as if God intended to bestow the good things asked,
which should be asked always with submission to the will of God, saying, `Not my will but thine be done'"
(John Gill).
The distinction just noted above is of great
practical importance for our peace of heart. Perhaps the one thing that
exercises Christians as much as anything else is that of unanswered prayers.
They have asked God for something: so far as they are able to judge, they have
asked in faith believing they would receive that for which they had supplicated
the Lord: and they have asked earnestly and repeatedly, but the answer has not come. The result is that, in many cases,
faith in the efficacy of prayer becomes weakened, until hope gives way to
despair and the closet is altogether neglected. Is it not so?
Now will
it surprise our readers when we say that every
real prayer of faith that has ever been offered to God has been answered? Yet we unhesitatingly affirm it. But in saying
this we must refer back to our definition of prayer. Let us repeat it. Prayer
is a coming to God, telling him my need
(or the need of others), committing my way unto the Lord, and then leaving him
to deal with the case as seemeth him best. This leaves God to answer the prayer
in whatever way he sees fit, and often, his answer may be the very opposite of
what would be most acceptable to the flesh; yet, if we have really LEFT our need in his hands, it
will be his answer, nevertheless. Let
us look at two examples.
In #Joh 11:1-44 we read of
the sickness of Lazarus. The Lord "loved" him, but he was absent from
Bethany. The sisters sent a messenger unto the Lord acquainting him of their
brother's condition. And note particularly how
their appeal was worded--"Lord, behold, he whom thou lovest is sick."
That was all. They did not ask him to heal Lazarus. They did not request him to
hasten at once to Bethany. They simply spread their need before him, committed
the case into his hands, and left him to act as he deemed best! And what was our Lord's reply? Did he respond to
their appeal and answer their mute request? Certainly he did, though not,
perhaps, in the way they had hoped. He answered by abiding "two days still
in the same place where he was" (#Joh 11:6), and allowing Lazarus to die! But in this instance, that
was not all. Later, he journeyed to Bethany and raised Lazarus from the dead.
Our purpose in referring here to this case, is to illustrate the proper
attitude for the believer to take before God in the hour of need. The next
example will emphasize, rather, God's method of responding to his needy child.
Turn to #2Co 12:1-21. The apostle Paul had been accorded an unheard of privilege. He
had been transported into Paradise. His ears have listened to and his eyes have
gazed upon that which no other mortal had heard or seen this side of death. The
wondrous revelation was more than the apostle could endure. He was in danger of
becoming "puffed up" by his extraordinary experience. Therefore, a
thorn in the flesh, the messenger of Satan, was sent to buffet him lest he be
exalted above measure. And the apostle spreads his need before the Lord; he
thrice beseeches him that this thorn in the flesh should be removed. Was his prayer answered?
Assuredly, though not in the manner he had desired. The "thorn" was
not removed, but grace was given to bear it. The burden was not lifted, but
strength was vouchsafed to carry it.
Does someone object that it is our privilege to do more than
spread our need before God? Are we reminded that God has, as it were, given us
a blank cheque and invited us to fill it in? Is it said that the promises of
God are all inclusive, and that we may ask
God for what we will? If so, we must call attention to the fact that it is
necessary to compare scripture with scripture if we are to learn the full mind
of God on any subject, and that as this is done we discover God has qualified the promises given to praying
souls by saying, "If we ask anything according
to his will he heareth us" (#1Jo 5:14). Real
prayer is communion with God, so that there will be common thoughts between his
mind and ours. What is needed is for him to fill our hearts with his thoughts, and then his desires will
become our desires flowing back to
him. Here then is the meeting place between God's sovereignty and Christian
prayer: If we ask anything according to his
will he heareth us, and if we do not
so ask, he does not hear us; as saith
the apostle James, "Ye ask, and receive not, because ye ask amiss, that ye might consume it upon your lusts" or desires (#Jas 4:3).
But did not the Lord Jesus tell his disciples, "Verily,
verily, I say unto you, Whatsoever ye
shall ask the Father in my name, he will give it you" (#Joh 16:23)? He did;
but this promise does not give praying souls carte blanche. These words of our Lord are in perfect accord with
those of the apostle John--"If we ask anything according to his will he
heareth us." What is it to ask "in the name of Christ"? Surely
it is very much more than a prayer formula, the mere concluding of our
supplications with the words "in the name of Christ." To apply to God
for anything in the name of Christ, it must needs be in keeping with what
Christ is! To ask God in the name of Christ is as though Christ himself were
the suppliant. We can only ask God for what Christ would ask. To ask in the
name of Christ, is therefore, to set
aside our own wills, accepting God's!
Let us now amplify our definition of prayer. What is prayer?
Prayer is not so much an act as it is an attitude--an
attitude of dependency, dependency
upon God. Prayer is a confession of creature weakness, yea, of helplessness.
Prayer is the acknowledgment of our need and the spreading of it before God. We
do not say that this is all there is
in prayer, it is not: but it is the essential, the primary element in prayer.
We freely admit that we are quite unable to give a complete definition of prayer within the compass of a brief
sentence, or in any number of words. Prayer is both an attitude and an act, a human act, and yet there is the divine
element in it too, and it is this which makes an exhaustive analysis impossible
as well as impious to attempt. But admitting this, we do insist again, that
prayer is fundamentally an attitude of dependency upon God. Therefore, prayer
is the very opposite of dictating to
God. Because prayer is an attitude of dependency, the one who really prays is submissive, submissive to the divine
will; and submission to the divine will means, that we are content for the Lord
to supply our need according to the dictates of his own sovereign pleasure. And
hence it is that we say, every prayer
that is offered to God in this spirit
is sure of meeting with an answer or response from him.
Here then is the reply to our opening question, and the scriptural
solution to the seeming difficulty. Prayer is not the requesting of God to
alter his purpose or for him to form a new one. Prayer is the taking of an
attitude of dependency upon God, the spreading of our need before him, then
asking for those things which are in accordance with his will, and therefore
there is nothing whatever inconsistent
between divine sovereignty and Christian prayer.
In closing this chapter we would utter a word of caution to
safeguard the reader against drawing a false conclusion from what has been
said. We have not here sought to epitomise
the whole teaching of Scripture on the subject of prayer, nor have we even
attempted to discuss in general the problem
of prayer; instead, we have confined ourselves, more or less, to a
consideration of the relationship
between God's Sovereignty and Christian Prayer. What we have written is
intended chiefly as a protest against
much of the modern teaching, which so stresses the human element in prayer, that the divine side is almost entirely
lost sight of.
In #Jer 10:23 we are told "It is not in man that walketh to direct his
steps" (cf. #Pr 16:9); and yet in many of his prayers, man impiously presumes to
direct the Lord as to his way, and as
to what he ought to do: even implying
that if only he had the direction of
the affairs of the world and of the church, he
would soon have things very different from what they are. This cannot be
denied: for anyone with any spiritual discernment at all could not fail to
detect this spirit in many of our modern prayer meetings where the flesh holds
sway. How slow we all are to learn the lesson that the haughty creature needs
to be brought down to his knees and humbled into the dust. And this is where the very
act of prayer is intended to put us. But man (in his usual perversity)
turns the footstool into a throne, from whence he would fain direct the
Almighty as to what he ought to do
giving the onlooker the impression that if God had half the compassion that
those who pray (?) have, all would quickly be put right! Such is the arrogance
of the old nature even in a child of God.
Our main purpose in this
chapter has been to emphasize the need for submitting, in prayer, our wills to God's. But it must also be
added, that prayer is much more than a pious exercise, and far otherwise than a
mechanical performance. Prayer is, indeed, a divinely appointed means whereby
we may obtain from God the things we ask, providing
we ask for those things which are in accord with his will. These pages will have been penned in vain unless they
lead both writer and reader to cry with a deeper earnestness than heretofore,
"Lord, teach us to pray" (#Lu 11:1).
Chapter 10 -- Our Attitude Toward
God's Sovereignty
"Even so, Father: for so it seemed good in thy sight" (#Mt 11:26).
In the present chapter we shall consider, somewhat briefly, the
practical application to ourselves of the great truth which we have pondered in
its various ramifications in earlier pages. In chapter twelve we shall deal
more in detail with the value of this
doctrine, but here we would confine ourselves to a definition of what ought to
be our attitude toward the
sovereignty of God.
Every truth that is revealed to us in God's Word is there not only
for our information but also for our inspiration. The Bible has been given to
us not to gratify an idle curiosity but to edify the souls of its readers. The
sovereignty of God is something more than an abstract principle which explains
the rationale of the divine
government: it is designed as a motive for godly fear, it is made known to us
for the promotion of righteous living, it is revealed in order to bring into
subjection our rebellious hearts. A true recognition
of God's sovereignty humbles as nothing else does or can humble, and brings the
heart into lowly submission before God, causing us to relinquish our own
self-will and making us delight in the perception and performance of the divine
will.
When we speak of the sovereignty of God we mean very much more
than the exercise of God's governmental
power, though, of course, that is included in the expression. As we have
remarked in an earlier chapter, the sovereignty of God means the Godhood of
God. In its fullest and deepest meaning the title of this book signifies the Character and Being of the one whose pleasure is performed and whose will is
executed. To truly recognize the
sovereignty of God is, therefore, to gaze upon the Sovereign himself. It is to
come into the presence of the august "Majesty on High." It is to have
a sight of the thrice holy God in his excellent glory. The effects of such a sight may be learned from those scriptures which
describe the experience of different ones who obtained a view of the Lord God.
Mark the experience of Job--the one of whom the Lord himself said,
"There is none like him in the earth, a perfect and an upright man, one
that feareth God, and escheweth evil" (#Job 1:8). At the
close of the book which bears his name we are shown Job in the divine presence,
and how does he carry himself when brought face to face with Jehovah? Hear what
he says: "I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear; but now mine eye
seeth thee: Wherefore I abhor myself,
and repent in dust and ashes" (#Job 42:5,6). Thus, a
sight of God, God revealed in awesome majesty, caused Job to abhor himself, and
not only so, but to abase himself
before the Almighty.
Take note of #Isa 6:1-13. In the sixth chapter of his
prophecy a scene is brought before us which has few equals even in Scripture.
The prophet beholds the Lord upon the Throne, a Throne "high and lifted
up." Above this Throne stood the seraphim with veiled faces, crying,
"Holy, holy, holy, is the Lord of hosts." What is the effect of this sight upon the prophet?
We read, "Then said I, Woe is
me! for I am undone; because I am a man of unclean lips, and I dwell in the
midst of a people of unclean lips: for mine eyes have seen the King, the Lord
of hosts" (#Isa 6:5). A sight of the divine King
humbled Isaiah into the dust, bringing him, as it did, to a realization of his
own nothingness.
Once more. Look at the prophet Daniel. Toward the close of his
life this man of God beheld the Lord in theophanic manifestation. He appeared
to his servant in human form "clothed in linen" and with loins "girded
with fine gold"--symbolic of holiness and divine glory. We read that,
"His body also was like the beryl, and his face as the appearance of
lightning, and his eyes as lamps of fire, and his arms and his feet like in
colour to polished brass, and the voice of his words like the voice of a
multitude." Daniel then tells the effect this vision had upon him and
those who were with him--"And I Daniel alone saw the vision: for the men
that were with me saw not the vision; but a great quaking fell upon them, so
that they fled to hide themselves. Therefore I was left alone, and saw this
great vision, and there remained no strength in me: for my comeliness was
turned in me into corruption, and I retained no strength. Yet heard I the voice
of his words: and when I heard the voice of his words, then was I in a deep
sleep on my face, and my face toward
the ground" (#Da 10:6-9). Once more, then, we are shown that to obtain a sight of the
Sovereign God is for creature strength to wither up, and results in man being
humbled into the dust before his Maker. What then ought to be our attitude toward the Supreme
Sovereign? We reply,
1. One Of Godly Fear
Why is it that, today, the masses are so utterly unconcerned about
spiritual and eternal things, and that they are lovers of pleasure more than
lovers of God? Why is it that even on the battlefields multitudes were so
indifferent to their soul's welfare? Why is it that defiance of heaven is
becoming more open, more blatant, more daring? The answer is, Because
"There is no fear of God before their eyes" (#Ro 3:18). Again;
why is it that the authority of the Scriptures has been lowered so sadly of
late? Why is it that even among those who profess to be the Lord's people there
is so little real subjection to his Word, and that its precepts are so lightly
esteemed and so readily set aside? Ah! what needs to be stressed today is that
God is a God to be feared.
"The fear of the Lord
is the beginning of wisdom" (#Pr 1:7). Happy the
soul that has been awed by a view of God's majesty, that has had a vision of
God's awful greatness, his ineffable holiness, his perfect righteousness, his
irresistible power, his sovereign grace. Does someone say, "But it is only
the unsaved, those outside of Christ,
who need to fear God"? Then the
sufficient answer is that the saved, those who are in Christ, are admonished to work out their own salvation with
"fear and trembling." Time was, when it was the general custom to
speak of a believer as a "God fearing man"--that such an appellation
has become nearly extinct only serves to show whither we have drifted.
Nevertheless, it still stands written, "Like as a father pitieth his
children, so the Lord pitieth them that fear
him" (#Ps 103:13)!
When we speak of godly fear, of course, we do not mean a servile
fear, such as prevails among the heathen in connection with their gods. No; we
mean that spirit which Jehovah is pledged to bless, that spirit to which the
prophet referred when he said, "To this man will I (the Lord) look, even
to him that is poor and of a contrite spirit, and trembleth at my Word"
(#Isa 66:2). It was this the apostle had in view when he
wrote, "Honour all men. Love the brotherhood. Fear God. Honour the
king" (#1Pe 2:17). And nothing will foster this godly fear like a recognition of
the sovereign Majesty of God.
What ought to be our attitude toward the Sovereignty of God? We
answer again,
2. One Of Implicit
Obedience.
A sight of God leads to a realization of our littleness and
nothingness, and issues in a sense of dependency and of casting ourselves upon
God. Or, again; a view of the divine majesty promotes the spirit of godly fear
and this, in turn, begets an obedient walk. Here then is the divine antidote
for the native evil of our hearts. Naturally, man is filled with a sense of his
own importance, with his greatness and self-sufficiency; in a word, with pride
and rebellion. But, as we remarked, the great corrective is to behold the
Mighty God, for this alone will really humble him. Man will glory either in
himself or in God. Man will live either to serve and please himself, or he will
seek to serve and please the Lord. None can serve two masters.
Irreverence begets disobedience. Said the haughty monarch of
Egypt, "Who is the Lord that I should obey his voice to let Israel go? I know not the Lord; neither will I let Israel go" (#Ex 5:2). To
Pharaoh, the God of the Hebrews was merely a
god, one among many, a powerless entity who needed not to be feared or
served. How sadly mistaken he was, and how bitterly he had to pay for his
mistake, he soon discovered; but what we are here seeking to emphasize is that,
Pharaoh's defiant spirit was the fruit of irreverence, and this irreverence was
the consequence of his ignorance of
the majesty and authority of the Divine Being.
Now if irreverence begets disobedience, true
reverence will produce and promote obedience. To realize that the Holy
Scriptures are a revelation from the Most High, communicating to us his mind
and defining for us his will, is the first step toward practical godliness. To
recognize that the Bible is God's
Word, and that its precepts are the precepts of the Almighty, will lead us to
see what an awful thing it is to despise and ignore them. To receive the Bible
as addressed to our own souls, given to us by the Creator himself, will cause
us to cry with the Psalmist, "Incline
my heart unto thy testimonies... Order my steps in thy Word" (#Ps 119:36,133). Once the
sovereignty of the Author of the Word is apprehended, it will no longer be a
matter of picking and choosing from the precepts and statutes of that Word,
selecting those which meet with our
approval; but it will be seen that nothing less than an unqualified and whole
hearted submission becomes the creature.
What ought to be our attitude toward the Sovereignty of God? We
answer, once more,
3. One Of Entire Resignation.
A true recognition of God's Sovereignty will exclude all murmuring. This is self-evident, yet the
thought deserves to be dwelt upon. It is natural to murmur against afflictions
and losses. It is natural to complain when we are deprived of those things upon
which we had set our hearts. We are apt to regard our possessions as ours
unconditionally. We feel that when we have prosecuted our plans with prudence
and diligence that we are entitled to
success; that when by dint of hard work we have accumulated a
"competence", we deserve to
keep and enjoy it; that when we are surrounded by a happy family, no power may
lawfully enter the charmed circle and strike down a loved one; and if in any of
these cases disappointment, bankruptcy, death, actually comes, the perverted
instinct of the human heart is to cry out against God. But in the one who, by
grace, has recognised God's sovereignty, such murmuring is silenced, and
instead, there is a bowing to the divine will, and an acknowledgment that he
has not afflicted us as sorely as we deserve.
A true recognition of God's sovereignty will avow God's perfect
right to do with us as he wills. The one who bows to the pleasure of the
Almighty will acknowledge his absolute right to do with us as seemeth him good.
If he chooses to send poverty, sickness, domestic bereavements, even while the
heart is bleeding at every pore, it will say, Shall not the Judge of all the
earth do right! Often there will be a struggle, for the carnal mind remains in
the believer to the end of his earthly pilgrimage. But though there may be a
conflict within his breast, nevertheless, to the one who has really yielded
himself to this blessed truth, there will presently be heard that voice saying,
as of old it said to the turbulent Gennesaret, "Peace be still"; and
the tempestuous flood within will be quieted and the subdued soul will lift a
tearful but confident eye to heaven and say, "thy will be done."
A striking illustration of a soul bowing to the sovereign will of
God is furnished by the history of Eli the high priest of Israel. In #1Sa 3:1-21 we learn
how God revealed to the young child Samuel that he was about to slay Eli's two
sons for their wickedness, and on the morrow Samuel communicates this message
to the aged priest. It is difficult to conceive of more appalling intelligence
for the heart of a pious parent. The announcement that his child is going to be
stricken down by sudden death is, under any circumstances, a great trial to any
father, but to learn that his two sons--in the prime of their manhood, and
utterly unprepared to die--were to be
cut off by a divine judgment, must have been overwhelming. Yet, what was the
effect upon Eli when he learned from Samuel the tragic tidings? What reply did
he make when he heard the awful news? "And he said, It is the Lord: let him
do what seemeth him good" (#1Sa 3:18). And not
another word escaped him. Wonderful submission! Sublime resignation! Lovely
exemplification of the power of divine grace to control the strongest
affections of the human heart and subdue the rebellious will, bringing it into
unrepining acquiescence to the sovereign pleasure of Jehovah.
Another example, equally striking, is seen in the life of Job. As
is well known, Job was one that feared God and eschewed evil. If ever there was
one who might reasonably expect divine providence to smile upon him--we speak
as a man--it was Job. Yet, how fared it with him? For a time, the lines fell
unto him in pleasant places. The Lord filled his quiver by giving him seven
sons and three daughters. He prospered him in his temporal affairs until he
owned great possessions. But of a sudden, the sun of life was hidden behind
dark clouds. In a single day Job lost not only his flocks and herds, but his sons
and daughters as well. News arrived that his cattle had been carried off by
robbers, and his children slain by a cyclone. And how did he receive this
intelligence? Hearken to his sublime words: "The
Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken away." He bowed to
the sovereign will of Jehovah. He traced his afflictions back to their First
Cause. He looked behind the Sabeans who had stolen his cattle, and beyond the
winds that had destroyed his children, and saw the hand of God. But not only did Job recognise God's sovereignty, he rejoiced
in it, too. To the words, "The Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken
away", he added, "Blessed be
the name of the Lord" (#Job 1:21). Again we
say, Sweet submission! Sublime resignation!
A true recognition of God's sovereignty causes us to hold our
every plan in abeyance to God's will. The writer well recalls an incident which
occurred in England over twenty years ago. Queen Victoria was dead, and the
date for the coronation of her eldest son, Edward, had been set for April 1902.
In all the announcements which were sent out, two little letters were
omitted--D.V.--Deo Volente: God willing. Plans were made and all arrangements
completed for the most imposing celebrations that England had ever witnessed.
Kings and emperors from all parts of the earth had received invitations to
attend the royal ceremony. The Prince's proclamations were printed and
displayed, but, so far as the writer is aware, the letters D.V. were not found
on a single one of them. A most imposing programme had been arranged, and the
late Queen's eldest son was to be crowned Edward the Seventh at Westminster
Abbey at a certain hour on a fixed day. And
then God intervened, and all
man's plans were frustrated. A still small voice was heard to say, "You
have reckoned without me", and Prince Edward was stricken down with
appendicitis, and his coronation postponed for months!
As remarked, a true recognition of God's sovereignty causes us to
hold our plans in abeyance to God's
will. It makes us recognise that the divine potter has absolute power over the
clay and moulds it according to his own imperial pleasure. It causes us to heed
that admonition--now, alas! so generally disregarded--"Go to now, ye that
say, Today or tomorrow we will go
into such a city, and continue there a year, and buy and sell, and get gain:
Whereas ye know not what shall be on the morrow. For what is your life? It is
even a vapour, that appeareth for a little time, and then vanisheth away. For
that ye ought to say, If the Lord will, we shall live, and do
this, or that" (#Jas 4:13-15). Yes, it is to the Lord's
will we must bow. It is for him
to say where I shall live--whether in America or Africa. It is for him to determine under what
circumstances I shall live--whether amid wealth or poverty, whether in health
or sickness. It is for him to say how
long I shall live--whether I shall be cut down in youth like the flower of the
field, or whether I shall continue for three score and ten years. To really learn this lesson is, by grace,
to attain unto a high form in the school of God, and even when we think we have
learnt it, we discover, again and again, that we have to relearn it.
4. One Of Deep
Thankfulness And Joy.
The heart's apprehension
of this most blessed truth of the sovereignty of God, produces something far
different than a sullen bowing to the inevitable. The philosophy of this
perishing world knows nothing better than to "make the best of a bad
job". But with the Christian it should be far other wise. Not only should
the recognition of God's supremacy beget within us godly fear, implicit
obedience, and entire resignation, but it should cause us to say with the
Psalmist, "Bless the Lord, O my soul: and all that is within me, bless his
holy name". Does not the apostle say, "Giving thanks always for all things unto God and the
Father in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ" (#Eph 5:20)? Ah, it is
at this point the state of our souls
is so often put to the test. Alas, there is so much self-will in each of us.
When things go as we wish them, we
appear to be very grateful to God; but what of those occasions when things go
contrary to our plans and desires?
We take it for granted when the real Christian takes a train
journey that, upon reaching his destination, he devoutly returns thanks unto
God--which, of course, argues that he
controls everything; otherwise, we ought to thank the engine driver, the
stoker, the signalmen etc. Or, if in business, at the close of a good week,
gratitude is expressed unto the giver of every good (temporal) and of every
perfect (spiritual) gift--which again, argues that he directs all customers to your shop. So far, so good. Such
examples occasion no difficulty. But imagine the opposites. Suppose my train
was delayed for hours, did I fret and fume; suppose another train ran into it,
and I am injured! Or, suppose I have had a poor week in business, or that
lightning struck my shop and set it on fire, or that burglars broke in and
rifled it--then what: do I see the hand of God in these things?
Take the case of Job once more. When loss after
loss came his way, what did he do? Bemoan his "bad luck"? Curse the
robbers? Murmur against God? No; he bowed before him in worship. Ah, dear
reader, there is no real rest for your poor heart until you learn to see the
hand of God in everything. But for that, faith
must be in constant exercise. And what is faith? A blind credulity? A
fatalistic acquiesence? No, far from it. Faith is a resting on the sure Word of
the living God, and therefore says, "We know that all things work together for good to them that love God,
to them who are the called according to his purpose" (#Ro 8:28); and therefore
faith will give thanks always for all things. Operative faith will
"Rejoice in the Lord alway"
(#Php 4:4).
We turn now to mark how this recognition of God's sovereignty
which is expressed in godly fear, implicit obedience, entire resignation, and
deep thankfulness and joy was supremely and perfectly exemplified by the Lord
Jesus Christ.
In all things the Lord Jesus has left us an example that we should
follow his steps. But is this true in connection with the first point made
above? Are the words "godly fear" ever linked with his peerless name? Remembering that
"godly fear" signifies not a servile terror, but rather a filial
subjection and reverence, and remembering too that "the fear of the Lord
is the beginning of wisdom", would it not rather be strange if no mention
at all were made of "godly fear" in connection with the one who was
wisdom incarnate! What a wonderful and precious word is that of #Heb 5:7--"Who
in the days of his flesh, having offered up prayers and supplications with
strong crying and tears unto him that was able to save him from death, and
having been heard for his godly fear" (R.V.). What was it but
"godly fear" which caused the Lord Jesus to be "subject"
unto Mary and Joseph in the days of his childhood? Was it not "godly
fear"--a filial subjection to and reverence for God--that we see
displayed, when we read, "And he came to Nazareth where he had been
brought up: and, as his custom was,
he went into the synagogue on the Sabbath day" (#Lu 4:16)? Was it
not "godly fear" which caused the incarnate Son to say, when tempted
by Satan to fall down and worship him, "It is written, thou shalt worship the Lord thy God and him only shalt thou
serve"? Was it not "godly fear" which moved him to say to the
cleansed leper, "Go thy way, show thyself to the priest, and offer the
gift that Moses commanded" (#Mt 8:4)? But why
multiply illustrations? {a}
How perfect was the obedience
that the Lord Jesus offered to God the Father! And in reflecting upon this let
us not lose sight of that wondrous grace which caused him, who was in the very
form of God, to stoop so low as to take upon him the form of a servant, and thus be brought into the place
where obedience was becoming. As the perfect servant he yielded complete
obedience to his Father. How absolute and entire that obedience was we may
learn from the words, he "became obedient
unto death, even the death of the cross" (#Php 2:8). That this
was a conscious and intelligent obedience is clear from his own
language--"Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life,
that I might take it again. No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of
myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again. This commandment have I received from my
Father" (#Joh 10:17,18).
And what shall we say of the absolute resignation of the Son to the Father's will--what, but, between
them there was entire oneness of accord. Said he, "For I came down from
heaven, not to do mine own will, but the will of him that sent me" (#Joh 6:38), and how
fully he substantiated that claim all know who have attentively followed his
path as marked out in the Scriptures. Behold him in Gethsemane! The bitter
"cup", held in the Father's hand, is presented to his view. Mark well
his attitude. Learn of him who was
meek and lowly in heart. Remember that there in the Garden we see the Word
become flesh--a perfect man. His body is quivering at every nerve, in
contemplation of the physical sufferings which await him; his holy and
sensitive nature is shrinking from the horrible indignities which shall be
heaped upon him; his heart is breaking at the awful "reproach" which
is before him; his spirit is greatly troubled as he foresees the terrible
conflict with the Power of Darkness; and above all, and supremely, his soul is
filled with horror at the thought of being separated from God himself--thus and
there he pours out his soul to the Father, and with strong crying and tears he
sheds, as it were, great drops of blood. And now observe and listen. Still the
beating of thy heart, and hearken to the words which fall from his blessed
lips--"Father, if thou be
willing, remove this cup from me: nevertheless,
not my will, but thine be done"
(#Lu
22:42). Here is submission personified. Here, is resignation to the
pleasure of a sovereign God superlatively exemplified. And he has left us an
example that we should follow his steps. He who was God became man, and was
tempted in all points like as we are--sin apart--to show us how to wear our creature nature!
Above we asked, "What shall we say of Christ's absolute
resignation to the Father's will"? We answer further, "This,--that
here, as everywhere, he was unique, peerless. In all things he has the
preeminence." In the Lord Jesus there was no rebellious will to be broken.
In his heart there was nothing to be subdued. Was not this one reason why, in
the language of prophecy, he said, "I am a worm, and no man" (#Ps 22:6)--a worm has no power of resistance! It
was because in him there was no resistance that he could say, "My meat is to do the will of him
that sent me" (#Joh 4:34). Yea, it was because he was in perfect accord with the Father in
all things that he said, "I delight
to do thy will, O God; yea, thy law is within my heart" (#Ps 40:8). Note the
last clause here and behold his
matchless excellency. God has to put
his laws into our minds, and write them in our hearts (see #Heb 8:10), but his law was already in Christ's heart!
What a beautiful and striking illustration of Christ's
thankfulness and joy is found in #Mt 11:1-30. There we
behold, first, the failure in the faith of his forerunner (#Mt 11:22,23). Next, we
learn of the discontent of the people: satisfied neither with Christ's joyous
message, nor with John's solemn one (#Mt 11:16-20). Third, we
have the non-repentance of those favoured cities in which our Lord's mightiest
works were done (#Mt 11:21-24). And then we read, "At
that time Jesus answered and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and
earth, because thou hast hid these
things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes" (#Mt 11:25)! Note the
parallel passage in #Lu 11:1-54 opens by saying, "In that hour Jesus rejoiced in spirit, and said, I thank thee" etc. Ah, here was
submission in its purest form. Here was one by which the worlds were made, yet,
in the days of his humiliation, and in the face of his rejection, thankfully
and joyously bowing to the will of the "Lord of heaven and earth".
What ought to be our attitude towards God's sovereignty? Finally,
5. One Of Adoring Worship.
It has been well said that "true worship is based upon recognised GREATNESS, and greatness is
superlatively seen in Sovereignty, and at no other footstool will men really worship" (J.B. Moody). In
the presence of the divine King upon his throne even the seraphim "veil
their faces."
Divine sovereignty is not the sovereignty of a tyrannical despot,
but the exercised pleasure of one who is infinitely wise and good! Because God
is infinitely wise he cannot err, and
because he is infinitely righteous he will
not do wrong. Here then is the preciousness
of this truth. The mere fact itself that God's will is irresistible and
irreversible fills me with fear, but once I realise that God wills only that
which is good, my heart is made to rejoice.
Here then is the final answer to the question of this
chapter--What ought to be our attitude toward the sovereignty of God? The
becoming attitude for us to take is that of godly fear, implicit obedience, and
unreserved resignation and submission. But not only so: the recognition of the
sovereignty of God, and the realization that the Sovereign himself is my Father, ought to overwhelm the heart and
cause me to bow before him in adoring worship. At all times I must say,
"Even so, Father, for so it
seemeth good in thy sight." We
conclude with an example which well illustrates our meaning.
Some two hundred years ago the saintly Madam Guyon, after ten
years spent in a dungeon lying far below the surface of the ground, lit only by
a candle at meal times, wrote these words,
"A little bird I am,
Shut from the fields of air;
Yet in my cage I sit
and sing To him who placed me there;
Well pleased a prisoner to be,
Because,
my God,
it
pleases thee.
Nought have I else to do
I sing the whole day long;
And he whom most I love to please,
Doth listen to my song;
He caught and bound my wandering wing
But still he bends to hear me sing.
My cage confines me round;
Abroad I cannot fly;
But though my wing is closely bound,
My heart's at liberty.
My prison walls cannot control
The flight, the freedom of the soul.
Ah! it is good to soar
These bolts and bars above,
To him whose
purpose I adore,
Whose Providence I love;
And in thy mighty will to find
The joy, the freedom of the mind."
{a} Note how Old Testament
prophecy also declared that "the Spirit of the Lord" should
"rest upon him, the spirit of wisdom and understanding, the spirit of
counsel and might, the spirit of knowledge and of the fear of the Lord" (#Isa 11:1,2).
Chapter 11 - Difficulties And
Objections
"Yet ye say, `The way
of the Lord is not equal. Hear now, O house of Israel; Is not my way equal?
Are not your ways unequal?'" (#Eze 18:25).
A convenient point has been reached when we may now examine, more
definitely, some of the difficulties encountered and the objections which might
be advanced against what we have written in previous pages. The author deemed
it better to reserve these for a separate consideration, rather than deal with
them as he went along, requiring as that would have done the breaking of the
course of thought and destroying the strict unity of each chapter, or else
cumbering our pages with numerous and lengthy footnotes. That there are difficulties involved in an attempt
to set forth the truth of God's sovereignty is readily acknowledged. The
hardest thing of all, perhaps, is to maintain the balance of truth. It is largely a matter of perspective. That God is sovereign is explicitly declared in
Scripture: that man is a responsible creature is also expressly affirmed in
Holy Writ. To define the relationship of these two truths, to fix the dividing
line betwixt them, to show exactly where they meet, to exhibit the perfect
consistency of the one with the other, is the weightiest task of all. Many have
openly declared that it is impossible
for the finite mind to harmonize them. Others tell us it is not necessary or
even wise to attempt it. But, as we have remarked in an earlier chapter, it
seems to us more honouring to God to seek in his Word the solution to every
problem. What is impossible to man is possible with God, and while we grant
that the finite mind is limited in its reach, yet, we remember that the
Scriptures are given to us that the man of God may be "thoroughly furnished", and if we approach their study in
the spirit of humility and of expectancy, then, according unto our faith will it be unto us.
As remarked above, the hardest task in this connection is to
preserve the balance of truth while insisting on both the sovereignty of God and the responsibility of the creature.
To some of our readers it may appear that in pressing the sovereignty of God to
the lengths we have, man is reduced to a mere puppet. Hence, to guard against
this, they would modify their
definitions and statements relating to God's sovereignty, and thus seek to
blunt the keen edge of what is so offensive to the carnal mind. Others, while refusing to weigh the evidence
that we have adduced in support of our assertions, may raise objections which
to their minds are sufficient to dispose of the whole subject. We would not
waste time in the effort to refute objections made in a carping and contentious
spirit, but we are desirous of
meeting fairly the difficulties
experienced by those who are anxious to obtain a fuller knowledge of the truth.
Not that we deem ourselves able to give a satisfactory and final answer to
every question that might be asked. Like the reader, the writer knows but
"in part" and sees through a glass "darkly." All that we
can do is to examine these difficulties in the light we now have, in dependence
upon the Spirit of God that we may follow on to know the Lord better.
We propose now to retrace our steps and pursue the same order of
thought as that followed up to this point. As a part of our "definition" of God's
sovereignty we affirmed: "To say that God is sovereign is to declare that
he is the Almighty, the Possessor of all power in heaven and earth, so that
none can defeat his counsels, thwart his purpose, or resist his will...The
sovereignty of the God of Scripture is absolute, irresistible, infinite."
To put it now in its strongest form, we insist that God does as he pleases, only as he pleases, always
as he pleases: that whatever takes place in time is but the outworking of that
which he decreed in eternity. In proof of this assertion we appeal to the
following scriptures--"But our God is in the heavens: he hath done whatsoever he hath pleased" (#Ps 115:3). "For
the Lord of hosts hath purposed, and who
shall disannul it? and his hand is stretched out, and who shall turn it
back?" (#Isa 14:27). "And all the inhabitants of the earth are reputed as
nothing: and he doeth according to his will in the army of heaven, and among
the inhabitants of the earth: and none
can stay his hand or say unto him, What doest thou?" (#Dan 4:35). "For
of him, and through him, and to him, are
all things: to whom be glory for
ever. Amen" (#Ro 11:36).
The above declarations are so plain and positive that any comments
of ours upon them would simply be darkening counsel by words without knowledge.
Such express statements as those just quoted, are so sweeping and so dogmatic
that all controversy concerning the subject of which they treat ought for ever
to be at an end. Yet, rather than receive them at their face value, every
device of carnal ingenuity is resorted to so as to neutralize their force. For
example, it has been asked, If what we see in the world today is but the
outworking of God's eternal purpose, if God's counsel is NOW being
accomplished, then why did our Lord teach his disciples to pray, "Thy will
be done on earth as it is in
heaven"? Is it not a clear implication from these words that God's will is
not now being done on earth? The
answer is very simple. The emphatic word in the above clause is "as."
God's will is being done on earth
today, if it is not, then our earth is not subject to God's rule, and if it is
not subject to his rule then he is not, as Scripture proclaims him to be,
"The Lord of all the earth" (#Jos 3:13). But God's
will is not being done on earth as it is
in heaven. How is God's will
"done in heaven"?--Consciously and joyfully. How is it "done on
earth"?--for the most part, unconsciously and sullenly. In heaven the
angels perform the bidding of their creator intelligently and gladly, but on
earth the unsaved among men accomplish his will blindly and in ignorance. As we
have said in earlier pages, when Judas betrayed the Lord Jesus and when Pilate
sentenced him to be crucified, they had no conscious intention of fulfilling
God's decrees yet, nevertheless, unknown to themselves they did do so!
But again. It has been objected: If everything that happens on
earth is the fulfilling of the Almighty's pleasure, if God has
foreordained--before the foundation of the world--everything which comes to
pass in human history, then why do we read in #Ge 6:6, "It repented the Lord that he had made man
on the earth, and it grieved him at
his heart"? Does not this language intimate that the antediluvians had
followed a course which their maker had not marked out for them, and that in
view of the fact they had "corrupted" their way upon the earth, the
Lord regretted that he had ever
brought such a creature into existence? Ere drawing such a conclusion let us
note what is involved in such an
inference. If the words "It repented the Lord that he had made man"
are regarded in an absolute sense,
then God's omniscience would be
denied, for in such a case the course followed by man must have been unforeseen by God in the day that he
created him. Therefore it must be evident to every reverent soul that this
language bears some other meaning. We submit that the words, "It repented the Lord" is an accommodation to our finite
intelligence, and in saying this we are not seeking to escape a difficulty or cut a knot, but are advancing an
interpretation which we shall seek to show is in perfect accord with the
general trend of Scripture.
The Word of God is addressed to men, and therefore it speaks the language of men. Because we cannot
rise to God's level he, in grace, comes down to ours and converses with us in
our own speech. The apostle Paul tells us of how he was "caught up into
paradise and heard unspeakable words which it is not possible (margin) to
utter" (#2Co 12:4). Those on earth could not understand the vernacular of heaven.
The finite cannot comprehend the infinite, hence the Almighty deigns to couch
his revelation in terms we may understand. It is for this reason the Bible
contains many anthropomorphisms--i.e., representations of God in the form of
man. God is Spirit, yet the Scriptures speak of him as having eyes, ears,
nostrils, breath, hands etc., which is surely an accommodation of terms brought
down to the level of human comprehension.
Again; we read in #Ge 18:20,21, "And the Lord said, Because
the cry of Sodom and Gomorrah is great, and because their sin is very grievous,
I will go down now, and see whether they
have done altogether according to the cry of it, which is come up unto me;
and if not, I will know." Now, manifestly, this is an anthropologism--God,
speaking in human language. God knew
the conditions which prevailed in Sodom, and his eyes had witnessed its fearful
sins, yet he is pleased to use terms here that are taken from our own
vocabulary.
Again; in #Ge 22:12 we read, "And he (God) said, Lay not thine hand upon
the lad, neither do thou anything unto him: for now I know that thou fearest God, seeing thou hast not withheld thy
son, thine only son, from me." Here again, God is speaking in the language
of men, for he "knew" before he tested Abram exactly how the
patriarch would act. So too the expression used of God so often in Jeremiah (#Jer
7:13 etc.), of him "rising up
early", is manifestly an accommodation of terms.
Once more: in the parable of the vineyard Christ himself
represents its owner as saying, "Then said the Lord of the vineyard, What
shall I do? I will send my beloved Son: it
may be they will reverence him when they see him" (#Lu 20:13), and yet,
it is certain that God knew perfectly well that the "husbandmen" of
the vineyard--the Jews--would not "reverence his Son" but, instead,
would "despise and reject" him, as his own Word had declared!
In the same way we understand the words in #Ge 6:6--"It repented the Lord that he had made man
on the earth"--as an accommodation of terms to human comprehension. This
verse does not teach that God was confronted with an unforeseen contingency,
and therefore regretted that he had
made man, but it expresses the abhorrence
of a holy God at the awful wickedness and corruption into which man had fallen.
Should there be any doubt remaining in the minds of our readers as to the legitimacy
and soundness of our interpretation, a direct appeal to Scripture should
instantly and entirely remove it--"The Strength of Israel (a divine title)
will not lie nor repent: for he is not a
man, that he should repent"
(#1Sa
15:29)! "Every good and perfect gift is from above, and cometh
down from the Father of lights, with whom
is no variableness neither shadow of
turning" (#Jas 1:17)!
Careful attention to what we have said above will throw light on
numerous other passages which, if we ignore their figurative character and fail to note that God applies to himself human modes of expression, will be obscure and
perplexing. Having commented at such length upon #Ge 6:6 there will
be no need to give such a detailed exposition of other passages which belong to
the same class, yet, for the benefit of those of our readers who may be anxious
for us to examine several other scriptures, we turn to one or two more.
One scripture which we often find cited in order to overthrow the
teaching advanced in this book is our Lord's lament over Jerusalem: "O
Jerusalem, Jerusalem, thou that killest the prophets, and stonest them that are
sent unto thee, how often would I
have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under
her wings, and ye would not!" (#Mt 23:37). The
question is asked, Do not these words show that the Saviour acknowledged the defeat of his mission,
that as a people the Jews resisted all his gracious overtures toward them? In
replying to this question, it should first be pointed out that our Lord is here
referring not so much to his own
mission, as he is upbraiding the Jews for having in all ages rejected his grace--this is clear from his reference to
the "prophets." The Old Testament bears full witness of how
graciously and patiently Jehovah dealt with his people, and with what extreme
obstinacy, from first to last, they refused to be "gathered" unto
him, and how in the end he (temporarily) abandoned them to follow their own
devices, yet, as the same Scriptures declare, the counsel of God was not frustrated by their wickedness,
for it had been foretold (and therefore, decreed) by him--see, for example, #1Ki 8:33.
#Mt 23:37 may well be compared with #Isa 65:2 where the
Lord says, "I have spread out my hands all the day unto a rebellious
people, which walketh in a way that was not good, after their own
thoughts." But, it may be asked, Did God seek to do that which was in
opposition to his own eternal purpose? In words borrowed from Calvin we reply,
"Though to our apprehension the will of God is manifold and various, yet
he does not in himself will things at variance with each other, but astonishes
our faculties with his various and "manifold"
wisdom, according to the expression of Paul, till we shall be enabled to
understand that he mysteriously wills what now seems contrary to his
will." As a further illustration of the same principle we would refer the
reader to #Isa 5:1-4: "Now will I sing to my well Beloved a song of my Beloved
touching his vineyard. My well Beloved hath a vineyard in a very fruitful hill:
And he fenced it, and gathered out the stones thereof, and planted it with the
choicest vine and built a tower in the midst of it, and also made a winepress
therein: and he looked that it should
bring forth grapes, and it brought
forth wild grapes. And now, O inhabitants of Jerusalem, and men of Judah,
judge, I pray you, betwixt me and my vineyard. What could have been done more to my vineyard, that I have not done
in it? wherefore, when I looked that it should bring forth grapes, brought it
forth wild grapes?" Is it not plain from this language that God reckoned
himself to have done enough for Israel to warrant an expectation--speaking
after the manner of men--of better returns? Yet, is it not equally evident when
Jehovah says here "He looked that it should bring forth grapes" that
he is accommodating himself to a form of finite expression? And, so also when
he says "What could have been done more to my vineyard, that I have not
done in it?" we need to take note that in the previous enumeration of what
he had done--the "fencing"
etc.--He refers only to external privileges, means, and
opportunities, which had been bestowed upon Israel, for, of course, he could even then have taken away from
them their stony heart and given them a new heart, even a heart of flesh, as he
will yet do, had he so pleased.
Perhaps we should link up with Christ's lament over Jerusalem in #Mt 23:37, his tears
over the city, recorded in #Lu 19:41: "He beheld the city, and wept
over it." In the verses which immediately follow, we learn what it was that occasioned his tears:
"Saying, If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the
things which belong unto thy peace! but now they are hid from thine eyes. For
the days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about
thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side." It was the
prospect of the fearful judgment which Christ knew was impending. But did those
tears make manifest a disappointed God? Nay, verily. Instead, they displayed a
perfect man. The Man Christ Jesus was no emotionless stoic, but one
"filled with compassion." Those tears expressed the sinless
sympathies of his real and pure humanity. Had he not "wept", he had been less than human. Those
"tears" were one of many proofs that "in all things it behoved him to be made like unto his brethren" (#Heb 2:17).
In chapter one we have affirmed that God is sovereign in the
exercise of his love, and in saying
this we are fully aware that many will strongly resent the statement and that,
furthermore, what we have now to say will probably meet with more criticism
than anything else advanced in this book. Nevertheless, we must be true to our
convictions of what we believe to be the teaching of Holy Scripture, and we can
only ask our readers to examine diligently in the light of God's Word what we
here submit to their attention.
One of the most popular beliefs of the day is that God loves
everybody, and the very fact that it is so popular
with all classes ought to be enough to arouse the suspicions of those who are
subject to the Word of Truth. God's Love toward all his creatures is the fundamental and favourite tenet of
Universalists, Unitarians, Theosophists, Christian Scientists, Spiritualists,
Russellites, etc. No matter how a man may live--in open defiance of heaven,
with no concern whatever for his soul's eternal interests, still less for God's
glory, dying, perhaps with an oath on his lips,--not withstanding, God loves
him, we are told. So widely has this dogma been proclaimed, and so comforting is it to the heart which is
at enmity with God, we have little hope of convincing many of their error. That
God loves everybody, is, we may say, quite a modern belief. The writings of the church fathers, the Reformers or
the Puritans will (we believe) be searched in vain for any such concept.
Perhaps the late D. L. Moody--captivated by Drummond's "The Greatest Thing
in the World"--did more than anyone else last century to popularize this
concept.
It has been customary to say God loves the
sinner, though he hates his sin. {a} But that is a meaningless distinction.
What is there in a sinner but sin? Is it not true that his "whole head is sick", and his "whole heart faint", and that "from the sole of the
foot even unto the head there is no
soundness in him?" (#Isa 1:5,6). Is it true that God loves
the one who is despising and
rejecting his blessed Son? God is Light as well as Love, and therefore his love
must be a holy love. To tell the
Christ rejecter that God loves him is to cauterise his conscience, as well as
to afford him a sense of security in his sins. The fact is, that the love of
God, is a truth for the saints only, and to present it to the enemies of God is
to take the children's bread and cast it to the dogs. With the exception of #Joh 3:16, not once in the
four Gospels do we read of the Lord Jesus--the perfect Teacher telling sinners
that God loved them! In the book of Acts, which records the evangelistic
labours and messages of the apostles, God's love is never referred to at all!
But, when we come to the Epistles, which are addressed to the saints, we have a full presentation of this precious
truth--God's love for his own. Let us
seek to rightly divide the Word of
God and then we shall not be found taking truths which are addressed to
believers and misapplying them to
unbelievers. That which sinners need to have brought before them is, the
ineffable holiness, the exacting righteousness, the inflexible justice and the
terrible wrath of God. Risking the danger of being misunderstood, let us
say--and we wish we could say it to every evangelist and preacher in the
country--there is far too much presenting of Christ to sinners today (by those
sound in the faith), and far too little showing sinners their need of Christ, i.e., their absolutely
ruined and lost condition, their imminent and awful danger of suffering the
wrath to come, the fearful guilt resting upon them in the sight of God--to
present Christ to those who have never been shown their need of him, seems to us to be guilty of casting pearls before
swine. {b}
If it be true that God loves every member of the human family then
why did our Lord tell his disciples, "He that hath my commandments, and
keepeth them, he it is that loveth me: and he that loveth me shall be loved of
my Father ... If a man love me, he will keep my words: and my Father will love
him" (#Joh 14:21,23)? Why say "he that loveth me shall be
loved of my Father" if the Father loves everybody? The same limitation is found in #Pr 8:17: "I
love them that love me." Again; we
read, "Thou hatest all workers
of iniquity"--not merely the works of iniquity. Here, then, is a flat
repudiation of present teaching that, God hates sin but loves the sinner;
Scripture says, "Thou hatest all
workers of iniquity" (#Ps 5:5)! God is angry with the wicked every day.
"He that believeth not the Son shall not see life, but the wrath of God"--not "shall abide", but even
now--"abideth on him" (#Ps 5:5; 7:11; #Joh 3:36). Can God
"love" the one on whom his "wrath" abides? Again; is it not
evident that the words "The love of God which is in Christ Jesus" (#Ro 8:39) mark a
limitation, both in the sphere and objects of his love? Again; is it not plain
from the words "Jacob have I loved, but
Esau have I hated" (#Ro 9:13) that God does not love everybody? Again; it is written, "For whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and
scourgeth every son whom he
receiveth" (#Heb 12:6). Does not this verse teach that God's love is restricted to the members of his own
family? If he loves all men without exception, then the distinction and
limitation here mentioned is quite meaningless. Finally, we would ask, Is it
conceivable that God will love the damned in the Lake of Fire? Yet, if he loves
them now he will do so then, seeing that his love knows no change--he is "without variableness or shadow of
turning"!
Turning now to #Joh 3:16, it should be evident from the
passages just quoted, that this verse will not bear the construction usually
put upon it. "God so loved the
world". Many suppose that this means, "The entire human
race". But "the entire human race", includes all mankind from
Adam till the close of the earth's history: it reaches backward as well as
forward! Consider, then, the history of mankind before Christ was born. Unnumbered millions lived and died before
the Saviour came to the earth, lived here "having no hope and without God
in the world", and therefore passed out into an eternity of woe. If God
"loved" them, where is the
slightest proof thereof? Scripture declares, "Who (God) in times past
(from the tower of Babel till after Pentecost) suffered all nations to walk in their own ways" (#Ac 14:16). Scripture
declares that, "And even as they did not like to retain God in their
knowledge, God gave them over to a
reprobate mind, to do those things which are not convenient" (#Ro 1:28). To Israel
God said, "You only have I known
of all the families of the earth" (#Am 3:2). In view
of these plain passages, who will be so foolish as to insist that God in the
past loved all mankind! The same applies with equal force to the future. Read
through the book of Revelation, noting especially #Re
8:1-19:21, where we have described the judgments which will yet be poured
out from heaven on this earth. Read of the fearful woes, the frightful plagues,
the vials of God's wrath, which shall be emptied on the wicked. Finally, read #Re 20:11-15, the great
white throne judgment, and see if you can discover there the slightest trace of
love.
But the objector comes back to #Joh 3:16 and says,
"World means world". True, but we have shown
that "the world" does not mean the whole human family. The fact is
that "the world" is used in a general
way. When the brethren of Christ said, "Shew thyself to the world" (#Joh 7:4), did they
mean show thyself to all mankind?
When the Pharisees said, "Behold, the
world is gone after him" (#Joh 12:19), did they
mean that "all the human
family" were flocking after him? When the apostle wrote, "Your
faith is spoken of throughout the whole
world" (#Ro 1:8), did he mean that the faith of the saints at Rome was the
subject of conversation by every man, woman, and child on the earth? When #Re 13:3 informs us
that "all the world wondered
after the beast", are we to understand that there will be no exceptions?
What of the godly Jewish remnant, who will be slain (#Re 20:4) rather
than submit? These, and other passages which might be quoted, show that the
term "the world" often has a relative
rather than an absolute force.
Now the first thing to note in connection with #Joh 3:16 is that our
Lord was there speaking to Nicodemus--a man who believed that God's mercies
were confined to his own nation.
Christ there announced that God's love in giving his Son had a larger object in
view, that it flowed beyond the boundary of Palestine, reaching out to
"regions beyond". In other words, this was Christ's announcement that
God had a purpose of grace toward Gentiles as well as Jews. "God so loved
the world", then, signifies, God's love is international in its scope. But does this mean that God loves every
individual among the Gentiles? Not necessarily, for as we have seen, the term
"world" is general rather than specific, relative rather than
absolute. The term "world" in itself is not conclusive. To ascertain who are the objects of God's love other
passages where his love is mentioned
must be consulted.
In #2Pe 2:5 we read of "the world of the ungodly." If then, there is a world of the ungodly there must also be a world of
the godly. It is the latter who are
in view in the passages we shall now briefly consider. "For the bread of
God is he which cometh down from heaven, and giveth life unto the world" (#Joh 6:33). Now mark
it well, Christ did not say, "offereth
life unto the world", but "giveth". What is the difference
between the two terms? This: a thing which is "offered" may be refused, but a thing "given",
necessarily implies its acceptance.
If it is not accepted, it is not "given", it is simply
proffered. Here, then, is a scripture that positively states Christ giveth life
(spiritual, eternal life) "unto the
world." Now he does not give
eternal life to the "world of the ungodly" for they will not have it,
they do not want it. Hence, we are obliged
to understand the reference in #Joh 6:33 as being to "the world of the
godly", i.e., God's own people.
One more: in #2Co 5:19 we read, "To wit that God was in Christ, reconciling the world unto himself". What is
meant by this is clearly defined in the words immediately following, "not
imputing their trespasses unto
them". Here again, "the world" cannot mean "the world of the ungodly", for their "trespasses" are "imputed" to them, as the
judgment of the Great White Throne will yet show. But #2Co 5:19 plainly teaches
there is a "world" which are "reconciled", reconciled
unto God, because their trespasses are not
reckoned to their account, having been borne by their substitute. Who then are
they? Only one answer is fairly possible--the world of God's people!
In like manner, the "world" in #Joh 3:16 must, in
the final analysis, refer to the world of God's people. Must we say, for there is no other alternative solution. It cannot mean the whole human race, for one half of the
race was already in hell when Christ came to earth. It is unfair to insist that
it means every human being now living, for every other passage in the New
Testament where God's love is
mentioned limits it to his own people--search and see! The
objects of God's love in #Joh 3:16 are precisely the same, as the objects of Christ's love in #Joh 13:1: "Now
before the Feast of the Passover, when Jesus knew that his time was come, that
he should depart out of this world unto the Father, having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the
end." We may admit that our interpretation of #Joh 3:16 is no novel
one invented by us, but one almost uniformly given by the Reformers and
Puritans, and many others since them. {c}
Coming now to chapter three--The Sovereignty of God in Salvation--
innumerable are the questions which might be raised here. It is strange, yet it
is true, that many who acknowledge the sovereign rule of God over material
things, will cavil and quibble when we insist that God is also sovereign in the
spiritual realm. But their quarrel is with God and not with us. We have given
scripture in support of everything advanced in these pages, and if that will
not satisfy our readers it is idle for us to seek to convince them. What we
write now is designed for those who do
bow to the authority of Holy Writ, and for their benefit we propose to examine
several other scriptures which have purposely been held over for this chapter.
Perhaps the one passage which has presented the greatest
difficulty to those who have seen that passage after passage in Holy Writ
plainly teaches the election of a limited number unto salvation is #2Pe 3:9: "not
willing that any should perish, but
that all should come to
repentance".
The first thing to be said upon the above passage is that, like
all other scripture, it must be understood and interpreted in the light of its
context. What we have quoted in the preceding paragraph is only part of the
verse, and the last part of it at that! Surely it must be allowed by all that
the first half of the verse needs to be taken into consideration. In order to
establish what these words are supposed by many to mean, viz., that the words
"any" and "all" are to be received without any
qualification, it must be shown that
the context is referring to the whole human race! If this cannot be
shown, if there is no premise to
justify this, then the conclusion
also must be unwarranted. Let us then ponder the first part of the verse.
"The Lord is not slack concerning his promise". Note
"promise" in the singular number, not
"promises." What promise is
in view? The promise of salvation?
Where, in all Scripture, has God ever promised
to save the whole human race!! Where indeed? No, the "promise" here
referred to is not about salvation. What then is it? The context
tells us.
"Knowing this, first, that there shall come in the last days
scoffers, walking after their own lusts, and saying, Where is the promise of
his coming?" (#2Pe 3:3,4). The context then refers to God's promise to send back his beloved Son.
But many long centuries have passed, and this promise has not yet been
fulfilled. True, but long as the delay may seem to us, the interval is short in the reckoning of God. As the proof of this we are reminded, "But, beloved, be
not ignorant of this one thing, that one day is with the Lord as a thousand
years, and a thousand years as one day" (#2Pe 3:8). In God's
reckoning of time, less than two days have yet passed since he promised to send
back Christ.
But more, the delay in the Father sending back his beloved Son is
not only due to no "slackness" on his part, but it is also occasioned
by his "longsuffering". His longsuffering to whom? The verse we are
now considering tells us: "but is longsuffering to us-ward". And whom are the "us-ward"?--the human
race, or God's own people? In the light of the context this is not an open question upon which each of
us is free to form an opinion. The Holy Spirit has defined it. The opening
verse of the chapter says, "This second Epistle, beloved, I now write unto you". And, again, the verse
immediately preceding declares, "But, beloved,
be not ignorant of this one thing etc.",
(#2Pe 3:8). The "us-ward" then are the "beloved" of
God. They to whom this epistle is addressed are "them that have obtained (not "exercised", but
"obtained" as God's sovereign gift)
like precious faith with us through the righteousness of God and our Saviour
Jesus Christ" (#2Pe 1:11). Therefore we say there is no room for a doubt, a quibble or an
argument--the "us-ward" are the elect of God.
Let us now quote the verse as a whole: "The Lord is not slack
concerning his promise, as some men count slackness; but is longsuffering to
us-ward, not willing that any should perish, but, that all should come to
repentance." Could anything be clearer? The "any" that God is
not willing should perish, are the "us-ward" to whom God is
"longsuffering", the "beloved" of the previous verses. #2Pe 3:9 means,
then, that God will not send back his Son until "the fulness of the
Gentiles be come in" (#Ro 11:25). God will not send back Christ
till that "people" whom he is now "taking out of the
Gentiles" (#Ac 15:14) are gathered in. God will not send back his Son till the body of
Christ is complete, and that will not be till the ones whom he has elected to
be saved in this dispensation shall have been brought to him. Thank God for his
"longsuffering to us-ward". Had Christ come back twenty years ago the
writer had been left behind to perish, in his sins. But that could not be, so God graciously delayed
the second coming. For the same reason he is still delaying his advent. His
decreed purpose is that all his elect
will come to repentance, and repent they shall.
The present interval of grace will not end until the last of the "other
sheep" of #Joh 10:16 are safely folded,--then
will Christ return.
In expounding the
Sovereignty of God the Spirit in Salvation we have shown that his power is irresistible, that, by his gracious
operations upon and within them, he "compels" God's elect to come to
Christ. The sovereignty of the Holy Spirit is set forth not only in #Joh 3:8 where we
are told "The wind bloweth where it pleaseth ... so is every one that is
born of the Spirit", but is affirmed in other passages as well. In #1Co 12:11 we read,
"But all these worketh that one and the selfsame Spirit, dividing to every
man severally as he will." And
again; we read in #Ac 16:6,7--"Now when they had gone throughout Phrygia and the region
of Galatia, and were forbidden of the
Holy Spirit to preach the word in
Asia. After they were come to Mysia, they assayed to go in to Bithynia: but the Spirit suffered them not."
Thus we see how the Holy Spirit interposed his imperial will in opposition to
the determination of the apostles.
But, it is objected against the assertion that the will and power
of the Holy Spirit are irresistible
that there are two passages, one in the Old Testament and the other in the New,
which appear to militate against such a conclusion. God said of old, "My
Spirit shall not always strive with
man" (#Ge 6:3), and to the Jews Stephen declared, "Ye stiffnecked and
uncircumcised in heart and ears, ye do always
resist the Holy Spirit: as your
fathers did, so do ye. Which of the prophets have not your fathers
persecuted?" (#Ac 7:51,52). If then the Jews resisted the Holy Spirit, how can we say his
power is irresistible? The answer is
found in #Ne 9:30--"Many years didst thou forbear them, and testifiedst
against them by thy Spirit in thy
prophets: yet would they not give ear." It was the external operations of the Spirit which
Israel "resisted." It was the Spirit speaking by and through the prophets
to which they "would not give ear." It was not anything which the
Holy Spirit wrought in them that they
"resisted", but the motives presented
to them by the inspired messages of the prophets. Perhaps it will help the
reader to catch our thought better if we compare #Mt 11:20-24--"Then
began he to upbraid the cities wherein most of his mighty works were done, because they repented not. Woe unto thee
Chorazin!" etc. Our Lord here pronounces woe upon these cities for their
failure to repent because of the
"mighty works" (miracles) which he had done in their sight, and not because of any internal operations of his grace! The same is true of #Ge 6:3. By
comparing #1Pe 3:18-20 it will be seen that it was by
and through Noah that God's Spirit "strove" with the
antediluvians. The distinction noted above was ably summarized by Andrew Fuller
(another writer long deceased from whom our moderns might learn much) thus:
"There are two kinds of influences by which God works
on the minds of men. First, `That which is common, and which is effected by the
ordinary use of motives presented to the mind for consideration'; Secondly,
`That which is special and supernatural'. The one contains nothing mysterious,
any more than the influence of our words and actions on each other; the other
is such a mystery that we know nothing of it but by its effects--The former ought to be effectual; the latter is so." The work of the Holy Spirit
upon or towards men is always "resisted", by them; his work within is always successful. What saith
the scriptures? This: "He which hath begun a good work IN you, will finish it" (#Php 1:6).
The next question to be considered is: Why preach the Gospel to every creature? If God the Father has
predestined only a limited number to be saved, if God the Son died to effect
the salvation of only those given to him by the Father, and if God the Spirit
is seeking to quicken none save God's elect, then what is the use of giving the
Gospel to the world at large, and where is the propriety of telling sinners
that "Whosoever believeth in
Christ shall not perish but have everlasting life"?
First;
it is of great importance that we should be clear upon the nature of the Gospel itself. The Gospel is God's good news
concerning Christ and not concerning sinners,--"Paul a servant of Jesus Christ,
called, to be an apostle, separated unto the Gospel of God ... concerning his Son, Jesus Christ our
Lord" (#Ro 1:1,3).
God would have proclaimed far and wide the amazing fact that his own blessed
Son "became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross." A
universal testimony must be borne to the matchless worth of the person and work
of Christ. Note the word "witness" in #Mt
22:14. The Gospel is God's "witness"
unto the perfections of his Son. Mark the words of the apostle: "For we
are unto God a sweet savour of
Christ, in them that are saved, and
in them that perish" (#2Co 2:15)!
Concerning the character and contents of the Gospel the utmost
confusion prevails today. The Gospel is not an "offer" to be bandied
around by evangelistic peddlers. The Gospel is no mere invitation, but a proclamation,
a proclamation concerning Christ;
true, whether men believe it or no. No man is asked to believe that Christ died
for him in particular. The Gospel, in brief, is this: Christ died for sinners,
you are a sinner, believe in Christ, and you shall be saved. In the Gospel, God
simply announces the terms upon which men may be saved (namely, repentance and
faith) and, indiscriminately, all are commanded to fulfil them.
Second; repentance and remission of sins are to be preached in the
name of the Lord Jesus "unto all the nations" (#Lu 24:47), because
God's elect are "scattered abroad" (#Joh 11:52) among all nations, and it is by the
preaching and hearing of the Gospel that they are called out of the world. The
Gospel is the means which God uses in the saving of his own chosen ones. By
nature God's elect are children of wrath "even as others"; they are
lost sinners needing a Saviour, and apart from Christ there is no salvation for
them. Hence, the Gospel must be believed by them before they can rejoice in the knowledge of sins forgiven. The
Gospel is God's winnowing fan: it separates the chaff from the wheat, and
gathers the latter into his garner.
Third; it is to be noted that God has other purposes in the
preaching of the Gospel than the salvation of his own elect. The world exists
for the elect's sake, yet others have the benefit of it. So the Word is
preached for the elect's sake, yet others have the benefit of an external call.
The sun shines, though blind men see it not. The rain falls upon rocky
mountains and waste deserts, as well as on the fruitful valleys; so also, God
suffers the Gospel to fall on the ears of the non-elect. The power of the
Gospel is one of God's agencies for holding in check the wickedness of the
world. Many who are never saved by it are
reformed, their lusts are bridled, and they are restrained from becoming worse.
Moreover, the preaching of the Gospel to the non-elect is made an admirable test of their characters. It exhibits
the inveteracy of their sin: it demonstrates that their hearts are at enmity against God: it justifies
the declaration of Christ that "men loved darkness rather than light,
because their deeds were evil" (#Joh 3:19).
Finally; it is sufficient for us to know that we are bidden to preach the Gospel to every
creature. It is not for us to reason about the consistency between this and the fact that "few are
chosen." It is for us to obey. It is a simple matter to ask questions
relating to the ways of God which no finite mind can fully fathom. We, too,
might turn and remind the objector that our Lord declared, "Verily I say
unto you, All sins shall be forgiven unto the sons of men, and blasphemies
wherewith soever they shall blaspheme. But he that shall blaspheme against the
Holy Spirit hath never forgiveness"
(#Mr
3:28,29), and there can be no doubt whatever but that certain of the Jews
were guilty of this very sin (see #Mt 12:24 etc.), and
hence their destruction was inevitable. Yet, notwithstanding, scarcely two
months later, he commanded his disciples to preach the Gospel to every creature. When the objector can
show us the consistency of these two things--the fact that certain of the Jews
had committed the sin for which there is never forgiveness, and the fact that
to them the Gospel was to be preached
--we will undertake to furnish a more sattisfactory solution than the one given
above to the harmony between a universal
proclamation of the Gospel and a limitation
of its saving power to those only that God has predestined to be conformed to
the image of his Son.
Once more, we say, it is not for us to reason about the Gospel; it is our business to preach it. When God ordered Abraham to offer up his son as a burnt
offering, he might have objected that this command was inconsistent with his promise "In Isaac shall thy seed be called." But instead of arguing he
obeyed, and left God to harmonize his promise and his precept. Jeremiah might
have argued that God had bade him do that which was altogether unreasonable
when he said, "Therefore thou shalt speak all these words unto them; but they will not hearken to thee; thou
shalt also call unto them; but they will
not answer thee" (#Jer 7:27), but instead, the prophet obeyed.
Ezekiel, too, might have complained that the Lord was asking of him a hard
thing when he said, "Son of man, go, get thee unto the house of Israel,
and speak with my words unto them. For thou art not sent to a people of a
strange speech and of an hard language, but to the house of Israel; Not to many
people of a strange speech and of a hard language, whose words thou canst not
understand. Surely, had I sent thee to them, they would have hearkened unto
thee. But the house of Israel will not
hearken unto thee; for they will not hearken unto me; for all the house of
Israel are impudent and hard hearted" (#Eze 3:4-7).
"But, O my soul, if truth so bright
Should dazzle and confound thy sight,
Yet still his written Word obey,
And wait the great decisive day."--Watts.
It has been well said, "The Gospel has lost none of its
ancient power. It is, as much today as when it was first preached, `the power
of God unto salvation'. It needs no pity, no help, and no handmaid. It can overcome
all obstacles, and break down all barriers. No human device need be tried to
prepare the sinner to receive it, for if God has sent it no power can hinder
it; and if he has not sent it, no power can make it effectual." (Dr.
Bullinger).
This chapter might be extended indefinitely, but it is already too
long, so a word or two more must suffice. A number of other questions will be
dealt with in the pages yet to follow, and those that we fail to touch upon the
reader must take to the Lord himself who has said, "If any of you lack
wisdom, let him ask of God, that
giveth to all liberally, and upbraideth not" (#Jas 1:5).
{a} #Ro 5:8 is
addressed to saints, and the
"we" are the same ones as those spoken of in #Ro 8:29,30.
{b} Concerning the rich
young ruler of whom it is said Christ "loved
him" (#Mr 10:21), we fully believe that he was one of God's elect, and was
"saved" sometime after his interview with our Lord. Should it be said
this is an arbitrary assumption and assertion which lacks anything in the
Gospel record to substantiate it, we reply, It is written, "Him that
cometh to me I will in no wise cast out", and this man certainly did "come" to him. Compare the
case of Nieodemus. He, too, came to Christ, yet there is nothing in #Joh 3:1-21 which
intimates he was a saved man when the interview closed; nevertheless, we know
from his later life that he was not
"cast out."
{c} For a further discussion of Joh 3:16 see Topic in
Appendix C 1414.
Chapter
12 -- The Value Of This Doctrine
"All
Scripture is given by inspiration of God,
And is profitable
for doctrine,
For reproof, for correction, for instruction in
righteousness:
That the man of God may be perfect,
Throughly furnished unto all good works" (#2Ti 3:16,17).
"All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in
righteousness: that the man of God may be perfect, throughly furnished unto all
good works" (#2Ti 3:16,17). "Doctrine" means "teaching", and it is by doctrine or teaching that the
great realities of God and of our relation to him--of Christ, the Spirit,
salvation, grace, glory, are made known to us. It is by doctrine (through the
power of the Spirit) that believers are nourished and edified, and where
doctrine is neglected, growth in grace and effective witnessing for Christ
necessarily cease. How sad then that doctrine is now decried as "unpractical"
when, in fact, doctrine is the very base of the practical life. There is an
inseparable connection between belief and practice--"As he thinketh in his heart, so is he" (#Pr 23:7). The relation between divine truth
and Christian character is that of cause to effect--"And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free" (#Joh 8:32)--free from
ignorance, free from prejudice, free from error, free from the wiles of Satan,
free from the power of evil; and if the truth is not "known" then
such freedom will not be enjoyed. Observe the order of mention in the passage with which we have opened. All
Scripture is profitable first for
"doctrine"! The same order is observed throughout the epistles,
particularly in the great doctrinal treatises of the apostle Paul. Read the
epistle of "Romans" and it will be found that there is not a single
admonition in the first five chapters. In the epistle of "Ephesians"
there are no exhortations till the fourth chapter is reached. The order is
first doctrinal exposition and then admonition or exhortation for the regulation
of the daily walk.
The substitution of so called "practical" preaching for
the doctrinal exposition which it has supplanted is the root cause of many of
the evil maladies which now afflict the church of God. The reason why there is
so little depth, so little intelligence, so little grasp of the fundamental
verities of Christianity, is because so few believers have been established in
the faith, through hearing expounded and through their own personal study of
the doctrines of grace. While the soul is not established in the doctrine of
the Divine Inspiration of the Scriptures--their full and verbal
inspiration--there can be no firm foundation for faith to rest upon. While the
soul is ignorant of the doctrine of Justification there can be no real and
intelligent assurance of its acceptance in the Beloved. While the soul is
unacquainted with the teaching of the Word upon Sanctification it is open to
receive all the crudities and errors of the Perfectionists or
"Holiness" people. While the soul knows not what Scripture has to say
upon the doctrine of the New Birth there can be no proper grasp of the two
natures in the believer, and ignorance here inevitably results in loss of peace
and joy. And so we might go on right through the list of Christian doctrine. It
is ignorance of doctrine that has
rendered the professing church helpless to cope with the rising tide of
infidelity. It is ignorance of
doctrine which is mainly responsible for thousands of professing Christians
being captivated by the numerous false isms of the day. It is because the time
has now arrived when the bulk of our churches "will not endure sound doctrine" (#2Ti 4:3) that they
so readily receive false doctrines.
Of course it is true that doctrine, like anything else in Scripture, may be
studied from a merely cold intellectual viewpoint, and thus approached, doctrinal teaching and doctrinal study will leave
the heart untouched, and will
naturally be "dry" and profitless. But, doctrine properly received,
doctrine studied with an exercised
heart, will ever lead into a deeper knowledge of God and of the unsearchable
riches of Christ.
The doctrine of God's sovereignty then is no mere metaphysical
dogma which is devoid of practical value, but is one that is calculated to
produce a powerful effect upon Christian character and the daily walk. The doctrine
of God's sovereignty lies at the foundation of Christian theology, and in
importance is perhaps second only to the Divine Inspiration of the Scriptures.
It is the centre of gravity in the system of Christian truth--the sun around
which all the lesser orbs are grouped. It is the golden milestone to which
every highway of knowledge leads and from which they all radiate. It is the
cord upon which all other doctrines are strung like so many pearls, holding
them in place and giving them unity. It is the plumbline by which every creed
needs to be measured, the balance in which every human dogma must be weighed.
It is designed as the sheet anchor for our souls amid the storms of life. The
doctrine of God's sovereignty is a divine cordial to refresh our spirits. It is
designed and adapted to mould the affections of the heart and to give a right
direction to conduct. It produces gratitude in prosperity and patience in
adversity. It affords comfort for the present and a sense of security
respecting the unknown future. It is, and it does all, and much more than we
have just said, because it ascribes to God--Father, Son, and Holy Spirit--the
glory which is his due, and places the creature in his proper place before
him--in the dust. We shall now consider the Value of the doctrine in detail.
1. It Deepens
Our Veneration Of The Divine Character.
The doctrine of God's sovereignty as it is unfolded in the
Scriptures affords an exalted view of the divine perfections. It maintains his creatorial
rights. It insists that "to us there is but one God, the Father, of whom are all things, and we in him;
and one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are
all things, and we by him" (#1Co 8:6). It
declares that his rights are those of the "potter" who forms and
fashions the clay into vessels of whatever type and for whatever use he may
please. Its testimony is, "Thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created" (#Re 4:11). It argues
that none has any right to "reply" against God, and that the only
becoming attitude for the creature to take is one of reverent submission before
him. Thus the apprehension of the absolute supremacy of God is of great
practical importance, for unless we have a proper regard to his high
sovereignty he will never be honoured in our thoughts of him, nor will he have
his proper place in our hearts and lives.
It exhibits the inscrutableness
of his wisdom. It shows that while God is immaculate in his holiness, he has permitted evil to enter his fair creation; that
while he is the possessor of all power,
he has allowed the Devil to wage war against
him for six thousand years at least; that while he is the perfect
embodiment of love, he spared not his
own Son; that while he is the God of all
grace, multitudes will be tormented for ever and ever in the Lake of Fire.
High mysteries are these. Scripture does not deny them, but acknowledge their
existence--"O the depth of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge of
God! how unsearchable are his
judgments, and his ways past finding
out!" (#Ro 11:33).
It makes known the irreversibleness
of his will. "Known unto God are all his works from the beginning of
the world" (#Ac 15:18). From the beginning God purposed to glorify himself "in the
Church by Christ Jesus, throughout all ages, world without end" (#Eph 3:21). To this
end, he created the world, and formed man. His all wise plan was not defeated
when man fell, for in the Lamb "slain from the foundation of the
world" (#Re 13:8) we behold the Fall anticipated. Nor will God's purpose be
thwarted by the wickedness of men since the Fall, as is clear from the words of
the Psalmist, "Surely the wrath of
man shall praise thee: the
remainder of wrath shalt thou restrain" (#Ps 76:10). Because
God is the Almighty his will cannot be withstood. "His purposes originated
in eternity, and are carried forward without change to eternity. They extend to
all his works, and control all events. He 'worketh all things after the counsel
of his own will.'" (Dr. Rice). Neither man nor devil can successfully
resist him, therefore is it written, "The Lord reigneth; let the people tremble." (#Ps 99:1).
It magnifies his
grace. Grace is unmerited favour, and because grace is shown to the
undeserving and Hell deserving, to those who have no claim upon God,
therefore is grace free and can be
manifested toward the chief of sinners. But because grace is exercised toward
those who are destitute of worthiness
or merit, grace is sovereign; that is
to say, God bestows grace upon whom he pleases. Divine sovereignty has ordained
that some shall be cast into the Lake
of Fire to show that all deserved
such a doom. But grace Comes in like a dragnet and draws out from a lost
humanity a people for God's name, to be throughout all eternity the monuments
of his inscrutable favour. Sovereign grace reveals God breaking down the
opposition of the human heart, subduing the enmity of the carnal mind, and
bringing us to love him because he first loved us.
2. It Is The Solid Foundation Of All True Religion.
This naturally follows from what we have said above under the
first head. If the doctrine of Divine sovereignty alone gives God his rightful
place, then it is also true that it alone can supply a firm base for practical
religion to build upon. There can be no progress in divine things until there
is the personal recognition that God is Supreme, that he is to be feared and
revered, that he is to be owned and served as
Lord. We read the Scriptures in vain unless we come to them earnestly
desiring a better knowledge of God's will for us--any other motive is selfish
and utterly inadequate and unworthy. Every prayer we send up to God is but
carnal presumption unless it be offered "according to his will"--anything short of this is to ask "amiss",
that we might consume upon our own
lusts the thing requested. Every service we engage in is but a "dead
work" unless it be done for the glory of God. Experimental religion
consists mainly in the perception and performance of the divine
will--performance both active and passive. We are predestinated to be
"conformed to the image of God's Son", whose meat it ever was to do
the will of the one that sent him, and the measure in which each saint is
becoming "conformed" practically, in his daily life, is largely
determined by his response to our Lord's word--"Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me; for I am meek and lowly
in heart."
3. It
Repudiates The Heresy Of Salvation By Works.
"There is a way which seemeth right unto a man; but the end
thereof are the ways of death" (#Pr 14:12). The way
which seemeth right and which ends in
"death", death eternal, is
salvation by human effort and merit. The belief in salvation by works is one
that is common to human nature. It may not always assume the grosser form of
Popish penances, or even of Protestant "repentance"--i.e., sorrowing
for sin, which is never the meaning of repentance in Scripture--anything which
gives man a place at all is but a variety of the same evil genus. To say, as
alas! many preachers are saying, God is willing to do his part if you will do
yours, is a wretched and excuseless denial
of the Gospel of his grace. To declare that God helps those who help
themselves, is to repudiate one of
the most precious truths taught in the Bible, and in the Bible alone; namely;
that God helps those who are unable
to help themselves, who have tried again and again only to fail. To say that
the sinner's salvation turns upon the action of his own will, is another form of the God dishonouring dogma of
salvation by human efforts. In the final analysis, any movement of the will is
a work: it is something from me,
something which I do. But the
doctrine of God's sovereignty lays the axe at the root of this evil tree by
declaring, "It is not of him that
willeth, nor of him that runneth,
but of God that sheweth mercy" (#Ro 9:16). Does some
one say, "Such a doctrine will drive sinners to despair." The reply is, Be it so; it is just such despair the
writer longs to see prevail. It is not until the sinner despairs of any help
from himself, that he will ever fall into the arms of sovereign mercy; but if
once the Holy Spirit convicts him that there is no help in himself, then he will recognize that he is lost, and will cry, "God be
merciful to me a sinner", and such
a cry will be heard. If the author may be allowed to bear personal witness, he
has found during the course of his ministry that, the sermons he has preached
on human depravity, the sinner's helplessness to do anything himself, and the salvation of the soul turning upon the
sovereign mercy of God, have been those most owned and blessed in the salvation
of the lost. We repeat, then, a sense of utter helplessness is the first prerequisite to any sound conversion.
There is no salvation for any soul until it looks away from itself, looks to
something, yea, to someone, outside
of itself.
4. It Is Deeply
Humbling To the Creature.
This doctrine of the absolute sovereignty of God is a great
battering ram against human pride, and in this it is in sharp contrast from
"the doctrines of men." The spirit of our age is essentially that of
boasting and glorying in the flesh. The achievements of man, his development
and progress, his greatness and self-sufficiency, are the shrine at which the
world worships today. But the truth of God's sovereignty, with all its
corollaries, removes every ground for human boasting and instills the spirit of
humility in its stead. It declares that salvation is of the Lord--of the Lord
in its origination, in its operation, and in its consummation. It insists that
the Lord has to apply as well as supply, that he has to complete as well as
begin his saving work in our souls, that he has not only to reclaim but to
maintain and sustain us to the end. It teaches that salvation is by grace
through faith, and that all our works
(before conversion), good as well as evil, count for nothing toward salvation.
It tells us we are "born, not of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of
man, but of God" (#Joh 1:13). And all this is most humbling to the heart of man, who wants to
contribute something to the price of his redemption and do that which will
afford ground for boasting and self-satisfaction.
But if this doctrine humbles us, it results in praise to God. If, in the light of God's
sovereignty, we have seen our own worthlessness and helplessness, we shall
indeed cry with the Psalmist, "All
my springs are in thee" (#Ps 87:7). If by
nature we were "children of wrath", and by practice rebels against
the divine government and justly exposed to the "curse" of the Law,
and if God was under no obligation to
rescue us from the fiery indignation and yet, notwithstanding, he delivered up
his well beloved Son for us all; then
how such grace and love will melt our hearts, how the apprehension of it will
cause us to say in adoring gratitude, "Not
unto us, O Lord, not unto us, but
unto thy name give glory, for thy
mercy, and for thy truth's sake" (#Ps 115: 1)! How
readily shall each of us acknowledge, "By
the grace of God I am what I am"! With what wondering praise shall we
exclaim--
"Why was I made to hear his voice,
And enter while there is room,
When thousands make a wretched choice,
And rather starve than come?
It was the same love that spread the feast,
That sweetly forced
us in;
Else we had still refused to taste
And perished in our sin."
5. It Affords A Sense of Absolute Security.
God is infinite in power, and therefore it is impossible to
withstand his will or resist the outworking of his decrees. Such a statement as
that is well calculated to fill the sinner with alarm, but from the saint it
evokes naught but praise. Let us add a word and see what a difference it
makes:--My God is infinite in power! then "I will not fear what man can
do unto me." My God is infinite in power, then "what time I am afraid I will trust in him." My God
is infinite in power, then "I
will both lay me down in peace, and sleep: for thou, Lord, only makest me dwell in safety" (#Ps 4:8). Right
down the ages this has been the
source of the saints' confidence. Was not this the assurance of Moses when, in
his parting words to Israel, he said-- "There is none like unto the God of
Jeshurun (Israel), who rideth upon the heaven in thy help, and in his
excellency on the sky. The eternal God is thy refuge, and underneath are the everlasting arms" (#De 33:26,27)? Was it
not this sense of security that caused the Psalmist, moved by the Holy Spirit,
to write--"He that dwelleth in the secret place of the Most High shall
abide under the shadow of the Almighty. I will say of the Lord, he is my refuge and my fortress: my God: in
him will I trust. Surely he shall
deliver thee from the snare of the fowler, and from the noisome pestilence. He
shall cover thee with his feathers, and under his wings shalt thou trust: his
truth shall be thy shield and buckler: Thou
shall not be afraid for the terror by night; nor for the arrow that flieth
by day; Nor for the pestilence that walketh in darkness; nor for the
destruction that wasteth at noonday. A thousand shall fall at thy side, and ten
thousand at thy right hand, but it shall not come nigh thee. Because thou
hast made the Lord, which is my refuge, even the Most High thy habitation; There shall no evil befall thee (instead, all
things will work together for good),
neither shall any plague come nigh thy dwelling" (#Ps 91:1-16)?
"Death and plagues around me fly,
Till he bid, I cannot die;
Not a single shaft can hit,
Till the God of love sees fit."
O the preciousness of this truth! Here am I, a poor, helpless,
senseless "sheep", yet am I secure
in the hand of Christ. And why am I
secure there? None can pluck me
thence because the hand that holds me
is that of the Son of God, and all power in heaven and earth is his! Again; I have no strength of my
own: the world, the flesh, and the Devil, are arrayed against me, so I commit
myself into the care and keeping of the Lord and say with the apostle, "I
know Whom I have believed, and am persuaded that
he is able to keep that which I have committed unto him against that
day" (#2Ti 1:12). And what is the ground of my confidence? How do I know that he is
able to keep that which I have committed unto him? I know it because God is almighty, the King of kings and Lord of
lords.
6. It Supplies
Comfort In Sorrow.
The doctrine of God's sovereignty is one that is full of
consolation and imparts great peace to the Christian. The sovereignty of God is
a foundation that nothing can shake and is more firm than the heavens and earth.
How blessed to know there is no corner of the universe that is out of his
reach! as said the Psalmist, "Whither shall I go from thy Spirit? or whither shall I flee from thy presence?
If I ascend up into heaven, thou art
there: if I make my bed in hell, behold, thou art there. If I take
the wings of the morning, and dwell in the uttermost parts of the sea; even there shall thy hand lead me, and
thy right hand shall hold me. If I say surely the darkness shall cover me; even the night shall be light about me.
Yea, the darkness hideth not from thee: but the night shineth as the day: the
darkness and the light are both alike to thee" (#Ps 139:7-12). How
blessed it is to know that God's strong hand is upon every one and every thing!
How blessed to know that not a sparrow falleth to the ground without his
notice! How blessed to know that our very afflictions
come not by chance, nor from the Devil, but are ordained and ordered by God:--"That no man should be
moved by these afflictions: for yourselves know
that we are appointed thereunto"
(#1Th
3:3)!
But our God is not only infinite in power, he is infinite in
wisdom and goodness too. And herein is the preciousness of this truth. God
wills only that which is good and his will is irreversible and irresistible!
God is too wise to err and too loving to cause his child a needless tear.
Therefore if God be perfect wisdom and perfect goodness how blessed is the
assurance that everything is in his hand, and moulded by his will
according to his eternal purpose! "Behold,
he taketh away, who can hinder him? who will say unto him what doest
thou?" (#Job 9:12). Yet, how comforting to learn that it is "he", and not the Devil, who "taketh
away" our loved ones! Ah! what peace for our poor frail hearts to be told
that the number of our days is with him (#Job 7:1; 14:5); that
disease and death are his messengers, and always march under his orders; that it is the Lord who
gives and the Lord who takes away!
7. It Begins A Spirit Of Sweet Resignation.
To bow before the sovereign will of God is one of the great
secrets of peace and happiness. There can be no real submission with contentment
until we are broken in spirit, that is, until we are willing and glad for the Lord to have his way with us. Not that we are
insisting upon a spirit of fatalistic
acquiescence far from it. The saints are exhorted to "prove what is that good,
and acceptable, and perfect will of God" (#Ro 12:2).
We touched upon this subject of resignation to God's will in the
chapter upon our attitude towards God's Sovereignty, and there, in addition to
the supreme pattern, we cited the examples of Eli and Job: we would now
supplement their cases with further examples. What a word is that in #Le 10:3--"And
Aaron held his peace." Look at the circumstances: "And Nadab and
Abihu, the sons of Aaron, took either of them his censer, and put fire therein,
and put incense thereon, and offered strange fire before the Lord, which he
commanded them not. And there went out fire from the Lord, and devoured them,
and they died before the Lord ... And
Aaron held his peace." Two of the high priests' sons were slain, slain
by a visitation of divine judgment,
and they were probably intoxicated at
the time; moreover, this trial came upon Aaron suddenly, without anything to prepare
him for it; yet, he "held his peace." Precious exemplification of the
power of God's all sufficient grace!
Consider now an utterance which fell from the lips of David:
"And the king said unto Zadok, Carry back the ark of God into the city: if
I shall find favour in the eyes of the Lord, he will bring me again, and show
me both it, and his habitation. But if he thus say, I have no delight in thee;
behold, here am I, let him do to me as
seemeth good unto him" (#2Sa
15:25,26). Here, too, the circumstances which confronted the speaker were
exceedingly trying to the human heart. David was sore pressed with sorrow. His
own son was driving him from the throne, and seeking his very life. Whether he
would ever see Jerusalem and the Tabernacle again he knew not. But he was so
yielded up to God, he was so fully assured that his will was best, that even though it meant the loss of the throne
and the loss of his life he was content for him to have his way--"let him
do to me as seemeth him good."
There is no need to multiply examples, but a reflection upon the
last case will be in place. If amid the shadows of the Old Testament
dispensation, David was content for the Lord to have his way, now that the heart
of God has been fully revealed at the cross, how much more ought we to delight in the execution of his
will! Surely we shall have no hesitation in saying--
"Ill that he blesses is our good,
And unblest
good is ill,
And all is right that seems most wrong,
If it be his sweet will."
8. It Evokes A Song Of Praise.
It could not be otherwise. Why should I, who am by nature no
different from the careless and godless throngs all around, have been chosen in
Christ before the foundation of the world and now blest with all spiritual
blessings in the heavenlies in him! Why was I, that once was an alien and a
rebel, singled out for such wondrous favours! Ah, that is something I cannot
fathom. Such grace, such love, "passeth knowledge." But if my mind is
unable to discern a reason, my heart can express its gratitude in praise and
adoration. But not only should I be grateful to God for his grace toward me in
the past, his present dealings will fill me with thanksgivings. What is the
force of that word "Rejoice in the Lord alway" (#Php 4:4)? Mark it
is not "Rejoice in the Saviour", but we are to
"Rejoice in the Lord", as
"Lord", as the Master of
every circumstance. Need we remind the reader that when the apostle penned
these words he was himself a prisoner in the hands of the Roman government. A
long course of affliction and suffering lay behind him. Perils on land and
perils on sea, hunger and thirst, scourging and stoning, had all been
experienced. he had been persecuted by those within the church as well as by
those without: the very ones who ought to have stood by him had forsaken him.
And still he writes, "Rejoice in
the Lord alway"! What was the
secret of his peace and happiness? Ah! had not this same apostle written,
"And we know that all things work
together for good to them that love God, to them who are the called
according to his purpose" (#Ro 8:28). But how
did he, and how do we, "know", that all things work together for good?
The answer is, "Because all things
are under the control of and are being regulated by the Supreme Sovereign, and
because he has naught but thoughts of
love toward his own, then `all things' are so ordered by him that they are made to minister to our ultimate good.'
It is for this cause we are to give "thanks always for all things
unto God and the Father in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ" (#Eph 5:20). Yes, give
thanks for "all things" for, as it has been well said "Our
disappointments are but his
appointments." To the one who delights in the sovereignty of God the
clouds not only have a "silver lining" but they are pure silver all through, the darkness
only serving to offset the light--
"Ye
fearful saints fresh courage take
The clouds ye so much dread,
Are big
with mercy and shall break
In blessings o'er your head."
9. It Guarantees The Final Triumph Of Good Over Evil.
Ever since the day that Cain slew Abel, the conflict on earth
between good and evil, has been a sore problem to the saints. In every age the
righteous have been hated and persecuted, while the unrighteous have appeared
to defy God with impunity. The Lord's people, for the most part, have been poor
in this world's goods, whereas the wicked in their temporal prosperity have
flourished like the green bay tree. As one looks around and beholds the
oppression of believers and the earthly success of unbelievers, and notes how
few are the former and how numerous the latter; as he sees the apparent defeat
of the right, and the triumphing of might and
the wrong; as he hears the roar of battle, the cries of the wounded, and
the lamentations of the bereaved; as he discovers that almost everything down
here is in confusion, chaos, and ruins, it seems as though Satan were getting
the better of the conflict. But as one looks above, instead of around, there is plainly visible to the eye of
faith a throne, a throne unaffected by the storms of earth, a throne that is
"set", stable and secure; and upon it is seated one whose name is the
Almighty, and who "worketh all things after the counsel of his own
will" (#Eph 1:11). This then is our confidence--God is on the throne. The helm is in his hand, and being Almighty his purpose cannot fail, for "he
is in one mind, and who can turn him?
and what his soul desireth, even that he
doeth" (#Job 23:13). Though God's governing hand is invisible to the eye of sense,
it is real to faith, that faith which rests with sure confidence upon his Word,
and therefore is assured he cannot fail.
What follows below is from the pen of our brother Mr. Gaebelein.
"There can be no failure with God. God is not a man, that he
should lie, neither the son of man, that he should repent; hath he said and
shall he not do it? or hath he spoken, and shall he not make it good?" (#Nu 23:19). All will
be accomplished. The promise made to his own beloved people to come for them
and take them from hence to, glory will not fail. He will surely come and
gather them in his own presence. The solemn words spoken to the nations of the
earth by the different prophets will also not fail. "Come near, ye
nations, to hear; and hearken ye people; let the earth hear, and all that is
therein; the world, and all things that come forth of it. For the indignation
of the Lord is upon all nations, and his fury upon all armies; He hath utterly
destroyed them, he hath delivered them to the slaughter" (#Isa 34:1,2). Nor will
that day fail in which "the lofty looks of man shall be humbled and the
haughtiness of men shall be bowed down and the Lord alone shall be
exalted" (#Isa 2:11). The day in which he is manifested, when his glory shall cover
the heavens and his feet will stand again upon this earth, will surely come.
His kingdom will not fail, nor all the promised events connected with the end
of the age and the consummation.
"In these dark and trying times how well it is to remember
that he is on the throne, the throne which cannot be shaken, and that he will
not fail in doing all he has spoken and promised. 'Seek ye out of the book of
the Lord and read: no one of these shall fail' (#Isa 34:16). In
believing, blessed anticipation, we can look on to the glory time when his word
and his will is accomplished, when through the coming of the Prince of Peace,
righteousness and peace comes at last. And while we wait for the supreme and
blessed moment when his promise to us is accomplished, we trust him, walking in
his fellowship and daily find afresh, that he does not fail to sustain and keep
us in all our ways."
10. It Provides A Resting Place For the Heart.
Much that might have been said here has already been anticipated
under previous heads. The one seated upon the throne of Heaven, the one who is
Governor over the nations and who has ordained and now regulates all events, is
infinite not only in power but in wisdom and goodness as well. He who is Lord
over all creation is the one that was "manifest in the flesh" (#1Ti 3:16). Ah! here
is a theme no human pen can do justice to. The glory of God consists not merely
in that he is highest, but in that being high he stooped in lowly love to bear
the burden of his own sinful creatures, for it is written "God was in Christ, reconciling the world unto himself" (#2Co 5:19). The
Church of God was purchased "with his own blood" (#Ac 20:28). It is
upon the gracious self-humiliation of the King himself that his kingdom is
established. O wondrous cross! By it he who suffered upon it has become not the
Lord of our destinies (he was that before), but the Lord of our hearts.
Therefore, it is not in abject terror that we bow before the Supreme Sovereign,
but in adoring worship we cry, "Worthy is the Lamb that was slain to receive
power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and
blessing" (#Re 5:12).
Here then is the refutation of the wicked charge that this doctrine is a horrible calumny upon
God and dangerous to expound to his people. Can a doctrine be
"horrible" and "dangerous" that gives God his true place,
that maintains his rights, that magnifies his grace, that ascribes all glory to him and removes every
ground of boasting from the creature? Can a doctrine be "horrible"
and "dangerous" which affords the saints a sense of security in
danger, that supplies them comfort in sorrow, that begets patience within them
in adversity, that evokes from them praise at all times? Can a doctrine be
"horrible" and "dangerous" which assures us of the certain
triumph of good over evil, and which provides a sure resting place for our
hearts, and that place, the perfections of the Sovereign himself? No; a
thousand times, no. Instead of being "horrible and dangerous" this doctrine of the Sovereignty of God
is glorious and edifying, and a due apprehension of it will but serve to make
us exclaim with Moses, "Who is like
unto thee, O Lord, among the gods?
who is like thee, glorious in holiness, fearful in praises, doing
wonders?" (#Ex 15:11).
Conclusion
"Halleluia: for the Lord God omnipotent reigneth" (#Re 19:6).
In our Foreword to the second edition (1353) we
acknowledge the need for preserving the
balance of truth. Two things are beyond dispute: God is sovereign, man is
responsible. In this book we have sought to expound the former; in our other
works we have frequently pressed the latter. That there is real danger of over
emphasising the one and ignoring the other, we readily admit; yea, history
furnishes numerous examples of cases of each. To emphasise the sovereignty of
God, without also maintaining the accountability of the creature tends to
fatalism; to be so concerned in maintaining the responsibility of man, as to
lose sight of the sovereignty of God, is to exalt the creature and dishonour
the creator.
Almost all doctrinal error, is, really, truth perverted, truth
wrongly divided, truth disproportionately
held and taught. The fairest face on earth, with the most comely features,
would soon become ugly and unsightly, if one member continued growing while the
others remained undeveloped. Beauty is, primarily, a matter of proportion. Thus
it is with the Word of God: its beauty and blessedness are best perceived when
its manifold wisdom is exhibited in its true proportions. Here is where so many
have failed, in the past. A single phase of God's truth has so impressed this
man or that, that he has concentrated his attention upon it, almost to the
exclusion of everything else. Some portion of God's Word has been made a
"pet doctrine", and often this has become the distinctive badge of
some party. But it is the duty of each servant of God to "declare all the counsel of God" (#Ac 20:27).
It is true that the degenerate days in which our lot is cast, when
on every side man is exalted, and "superman" has become a common
expression, there is real need for a special
emphasis upon the glorious fact of God's supremacy. The more so where this is
expressly denied. Yet even here much wisdom is required, lest our zeal should
not be "according to knowledge." The words "meat in due
season" should ever be before the servant of God. What is needed,
primarily, by one congregation, may not be specifically needed by another. If
called to labour where Arminian preachers have preceded, then the neglected
truth of God's sovereignty should be expounded--though with caution and care,
lest too much "strong meat" be given to "babes". The
example of Christ in #Joh 16:12, "I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear
them now", must be borne in
mind. On the other hand, if I am called to take charge of a distinctly
Calvinistic pulpit, then the truth of human responsibility (in its many
aspects) may be profitably set forth. What the preacher needs to give out is
not what his people most like to
hear, but what they most need, i.e.
those aspects of truth they are least familiar with, or least exhibiting in
their walk.
To carry into actual practice what we have inculcated above will,
most probably, lay the preacher open to the charge of being a turncoat. But
what matters that if he has his Master's approval? He is not called upon to be
"consistent" with himself, nor with any rules drawn up by man; his
business is to be consistent with Holy
Writ. And in Scripture each part or aspect of truth is balanced by another
aspect of truth. There are two sides to everything, even to the character of
God, for he is "light" (#1Jo 1:5) as well as
"love" (#1Jo 4:8), and therefore are we called upon to "Behold, therefore the
goodness and severity of God" (#Ro 11:22). To be all
the time preaching on the one to the exclusion of the other, caricatures the
divine character.
When the Son of God became incarnate he came here in "the
form of a servant" (#Php 2:6);
nevertheless, in the manger he was "Christ the Lord" (#Lu 2:11)! All things are possible with God
(#Mt
19:26), yet God "cannot lie" (#Tit 1:2). Scripture
says, "Bear ye one another's burdens" (#Ga 6:2), yet the
same chapter insists "every man shall bear his own burden" (#Ga 6:5). We are
enjoined to take "no thought for the morrow" (#Mt 6:34), yet
"if any provide not for his own, and specially for those of his own house,
he hath denied the faith, and is worse than an infidel" (#1Ti 5:8). No sheep
of Christ's can perish (#Joh 10:28,29), yet the Christian is bidden to make his
"calling and election sure"
(#2Pe
1:10). And so we might go on multiplying illustrations. These things
are not contradictions, but complementaries: the one "balances the
other". Thus, the Scriptures set forth both
the sovereignty of God and the responsibility of man. So too should every
servant of God, and that, in their proper proportions.
But we return now to a few closing reflections upon our present
theme. "And Jehoshaphat stood in the congregation of Judah and Jerusalem,
in the house of the Lord, before the new court, And said, O Lord God of our
fathers, art not thou God in heaven? and rulest not thou over all the kingdoms
of the heathen? and in thine hand is there not power and might, so that none is able to withstand
thee?" (#2Ch 20:5,6). Yes, the Lord is God,
ruling over all the kingdoms of men, ruling in supreme majesty and might. Yet
in our day, a day of boasted enlightenment and progress, this is denied on
every hand. A materialistic science and an atheistic philosophy have bowed God
out of his own world, and everything is regulated, forsooth, by (impersonal)
laws of nature. So in human affairs: at best God is a far distant spectator,
and a helpless one at that. God could
not help the launching of the dreadful war, and though he longed to put a stop
to it he was unable to do so--and this in the face of #1Ch 5:22
2Ch 24:24! Having endowed man with "free agency" God is obliged
to let man make his own choice and go his own way, and he cannot interfere with
him, or otherwise his moral responsibility would be destroyed. Such are the
popular beliefs of the day. One is not surprised to find these sentiments
emanating from German theologians, but how sad that they should be taught in
many of our seminaries, echoed from many of our pulpits, and accepted by many
of the rank and file of professing Christians.
One of the most flagrant sins of our age is that of
irreverence--the failure to ascribe the glory which is due the august majesty
of God. Men limit the power and activities of the Lord in their degrading
concepts of his being and character. Originally, man was made in the image and
likeness of God, but today we are asked to believe in a god made in the image
and likeness of man. The creator is reduced to the level of the creature: his
omniscience is called into question, his omnipotency is no longer believed in,
and his absolute sovereignty is flatly denied. Men claim to be the architects
of their own fortunes and the determiners of their own destiny. They know not
that their lives are at the disposal of the Divine Despot. They know not they
have no more power to thwart his secret decrees than a worm has to resist the
tread of an elephant. They know not that "The Lord hath prepared his
throne in the heavens; and his kingdom ruleth
over all" (#Ps 103:19).
In the foregoing pages we have sought to repudiate such paganistic
views as the above mentioned, and have endeavoured to show from Scripture that
God is God, on the throne, and that
so far from the recent war being an evidence that the helm had slipped out of
his hand, it was a sure proof that he still lives and reigns, and is now
bringing to pass that which he had foredetermined and foreannounced (#Mt 24:6-8 etc.). That
the carnal mind is enmity against God, that the unregenerate man is a rebel
against the divine government, that the sinner has no concern for the glory of
his maker, and little or no respect for his revealed will, is freely granted.
But, nevertheless, behind the scenes, God is ruling and over ruling, fulfilling
his eternal purpose, not only in spite of but, also by means of, those who are
his enemies.
How earnestly are the claims of man contended for against the
claims of God! Has not man power and knowledge, but what of it? Has God no
will, or power, or knowledge? Suppose man's will conflicts with God's--then what?
Turn to the Scripture of Truth for answer. Men had a will on the plains of
Shinar and determined to build a tower whose top should reach unto heaven, but
what came of their purpose? Pharaoh
had a will when he hardened is heart and refused to allow Jehovah's people to
go and worship him in the wilderness, but what came of his rebellion? Balak had
a will when he hired Balaam to come and curse the Hebrews, but of what avail
was it? The Canaanites had a will when they determined to prevent Israel
occupying the land of Canaan, but how far did they succeed? Saul had a will
when he hurled his javelin at David, but it entered the wall instead! Jonah had
a will when he refused to go and preach to the Ninevites, but what came of it?
Nebuchadnezzar had a will when he thought to destroy the three Hebrew children,
but God had a will too, and the fire did not harm them. Herod had a will when
he sought to slay the child Jesus, and had there been no living, reigning God,
his evil desire would have been effected; but in daring to pit his puny will
against the irresistible will of the Almighty, his efforts came to nought. Yes,
my reader, and you, too, had a will when you formed your plans without first seeking counsel of the
Lord, therefore did he overturn them!
"There are many devices in a man's heart: nevertheless the counsel of the Lord, that shall stand" (#Pr 19:21).
What a demonstration of the irresistible
sovereignty of God is furnished by that wonderful statement found in #Re 17:17--"For God hath put in their hearts to fulfil his will, and to agree, and give
their kingdom unto the Beast, until the words of God shall be fulfilled."
The fulfilment of any single prophecy is but the sovereignty of God in
operation. It is the demonstration that what he has decreed he is able also to
perform. It is proof that none can withstand the execution of his counsel or
prevent the accomplishment of his pleasure. It is the evidence that God inclines men to fulfil that which he has
ordained and perform that which he has foredetermined. If God were not absolute
Sovereign, then divine prophecy would be valueless, for in such case no
guarantee would be left that what he had predicted would surely come to pass.
"For God hath put in
their hearts to fulfil his will and, to agree, and give their kingdom unto
the Beast, until the words of God shall be fulfilled" (#Re 17:17). Even in
that terrible time, when Satan has been cast down to the earth itself (#Re 12:9), when the
Antichrist is reigning in full power (#Re 13:1-18), when the
basest passions of men are let loose (#Re 6:4), even then
God is supreme above all, working "through
all" (#Eph 4:6), controlling men's hearts and directing their counsels to the
fulfilling of his own purpose. We
cannot do better than quote here the excellent comments of our esteemed friend
Mr. Waiter Scott upon this verse--"God works unseen, but not the less
truly, in all the political changes of the day. The astute statesman, the
clever diplomatist, is simply an agent in the Lord's hands. He knows it not.
Self-will and motives of policy may influence to action, but God is steadily
working toward an end--to exhibit the heavenly and earthly glories of his Son.
Thus, instead of kings and statesmen thwarting God's purpose, they
unconsciously forward it. God is not indifferent, but is behind the scenes of
human action. The doings of the future ten kings in relation to Babylon and the
Beast--the ecclesiastical and secular powers--are not only under the direct
control of God, but all is done in fulfilment of his words."
Closely connected with #Re 17:17 is that
which is brought before us in #Mic 4:11,12--"Now also many nations are
gathered against thee, that say, Let her be defiled, and let our eye look upon
Zion. But they, know not the thoughts of the Lord, neither
understand they his counsel: for he
shall gather them as the sheaves into the floor." Here is another instance
which demonstrates God's absolute control of the nations, of his power to
fulfil his secret counsel or decrees through and by them, and of his inclining
men to perform his pleasure though it be performed blindly and unwittingly by
them.
Once more. What a word was that of the Lord Jesus as he stood
before Pilate! Who can depict the scene! There was the Roman official, and
there also was the servant of Jehovah standing before him. Said Pilate,
"Whence art thou?" And we read, "Jesus gave him no answer."
Then said Pilate unto him, "Speakest thou not unto me? Knowest thou not that
I have power to crucify thee, and
have power to release thee?" (#Joh 19:10). Ah! that
is what Pilate thought. That is what many another has thought. He was merely
voicing the common conviction of the human heart--the heart which leaves God out of its reckoning. But hear the
Lord Jesus as he corrects Pilate, and
at the same time repudiates the proud
boasting of men in general--"thou
couldest have no power against
me, except it were given thee from
above" (#Joh 19:11). How sweeping is this assertion! Man--even though he be a
prominent official in the most influential empire of his day--has no power
except that which is given him from above, no power, even, to do that which is
evil, i.e., carry out his own evil
designs, unless God empowers him so that his
purpose may be forwarded. It was God
who gave Pilate the power to sentence to death his well beloved Son! And how
this rebukes the sophistries and reasonings of men, who argue that God does
nothing more than permit evil! Why,
go right back to the very first words spoken by the Lord God to man after the
Fall, and hear him saying, "I will
put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her
seed" (#Ge 3:15)! Bare permission of sin does not cover all the facts which are
revealed in Scripture touching this mystery. As Calvin succinctly remarked,
"But what reason shall we assign for his permitting it but because it is his will?"
At the close of chapter eleven we promised to give attention to
one or two other Difficulties which were not examined at that time. To them we
now turn. If God has not only predetermined the salvation of his own, but has
also foreordained the good works which they are to walk in (#Eph 2:10), then what
incentive remains for us to strive after practical godliness? If God has fixed
the number of those who are to be saved, and the others are vessels of wrath
fitted to destruction, then what encouragement have we to preach the Gospel to
the lost? Let us take up these questions in the order of mention.
1. God's Sovereignty And The Believer's Growth In Grace.
If God has foreordained everything that comes to pass, of what
avail is it for us to
"exercise" ourselves "unto godliness" (#1Ti 4:7)? If God
has before ordained the good works in which we are to walk (#Eph 2:10), then why
should we be careful to maintain good
works (#Tit 3:8)? This only raises once more the problem of human responsibility.
Really, it should be enough for us to reply, God has bidden us do so. Nowhere does Scripture inculcate or encourage a
spirit of fatalistic indifference. Contentment with our present attainments is
expressly disallowed. The word to every believer is, "Press toward the mark for the prize of the high calling of
God in Christ Jesus" (#Php 3:14). This was the apostle's aim, and it should be ours.
Instead of hindering the development of Christian character, a proper
apprehension and appreciation of God's sovereignty will forward it. Just as the
sinner's despair of any help from
himself is the first prerequisite of a sound conversion, so the loss of all
confidence in himself is the first essential in the believer's growth in grace;
and just as the sinner despairing of help from himself will cast him into the
arms of sovereign mercy, so the Christian, conscious of his own frailty, will
turn unto the Lord for power. It is when we are weak, we are strong (#2Co 12:10): that is
to say, there must be consciousness
of our weakness before we shall turn to the Lord for help. While the Christian
allows the thought that he is sufficient in himself, while he imagines that by
mere force of will he shall resist temptation, while he has any confidence in
the flesh then, like Peter who boasted
that though all forsook the Lord yet should not he, so we shall certainly fail
and fall. Apart from Christ we can do nothing
(#Joh
15:5). The promise of God is, "He giveth power to the faint; and to them that have no might (of their
own) he increaseth strength" (#Isa 40:29).
The question now before us is of great practical importance, and
we are deeply anxious to express ourselves clearly and simply. The secret of
development of Christian character is the realization of our own powerlessness, acknowledged
powerlessness, and the consequent turning unto the Lord for help. The plain
fact is that of ourselves we are utterly unable to practice a single precept or
obey a single command that is set before us in the Scriptures. For example:
"Love your enemies"--but of ourselves we cannot do this, or make
ourselves do it. "In nothing be anxious"--but who can avoid and
prevent anxiety when things go wrong? "Awake to righteousness and sin
not"--but who can help sinning? These are merely examples selected at
random from scores of others. Does then God mock
us by bidding us do what he knows we are unable
to do? The answer of Augustine to this question is the best we have met
with--"God gives commands we cannot perform, that we may know what we ought to request from him."
A consciousness of our powerlessness should cast us upon him who has all power.
here then is where a vision and view of God's sovereignty helps, for it reveals his
sufficiency and shows us our insufficiency.
2. God's Sovereignty And Christian Service.
If God has determined before the foundation of the world the
precise number of those who shall be saved, then why should we concern ourselves about the eternal
destiny of those with whom we come into contact? What place is left for zeal in Christian service? Will not the
doctrine of God's sovereignty, and its corollary of predestination, discourage the Lord's servants from
faithfulness in evangelism? No; instead of discouraging
his servants, a recognition of God's sovereignty is most encouraging to them. Here is one, for example, who is called upon
to do the work of an evangelist, and he goes forth believing in the freedom of
the will and in the sinner's own ability to come to Christ. He preaches the
Gospel as faithfully and zealously as he knows how; but, he finds the vast
majority of his hearers are utterly indifferent and have no heart at all for
Christ. He discovers that men are, for the most part, thoroughly wrapped up in
the things of the world, and that few have any concern about the world to come.
He beseeches men to be reconciled to God, and pleads with them over their
soul's salvation. But it is of no avail. He becomes thoroughly disheartened,
and asks himself, What is the use of it all? Shall he quit, or had he better
change his mission and message? If men will not respond to the Gospel, had he
not better engage in that which is more popular and acceptable to the world?
Why not occupy himself with humanitarian efforts, with social uplift work, with
the purity campaign? Alas! that so many men who once preached the Gospel are
now engaged in these activities instead.
What then is God's corrective for his
discouraged servant? First, he needs to learn from Scripture that God is not
now seeking to convert the world, but that in this age he is "taking out
of the Gentiles" a people for his name (#Ac
15:14). What then is God's corrective for his
discouraged servant? This--a proper apprehension of God's plan for this Dispensation. Again: what is God's remedy for
dejection at apparent failure in our labours? This--the assurance that God's purpose cannot fail, that God's plans cannot
miscarry, that God's will must be
done. Our labours are not intended to
bring about that which God has not
decreed. Once more: what is God's word of cheer for the one who is thoroughly
disheartened at the lack of response to his appeals and the absence of fruit
for his labours? This--that we are
not responsible for results: that is God's
side, and God's business. Paul may
"plant", and Apollos may "water", but it is God who "gave the increase" (#1Co 3:6). Our business is
to obey Christ and preach the Gospel to every creature, to emphasise the
"Whosoever believeth", and then to leave the sovereign operations of
the Holy Spirit to apply the Word in quickening power to whom he wills, resting on the sure promise of
Jehovah--"For as the rain cometh down, and the snow from heaven, and
returneth not thither, but watereth the earth, and maketh it bring forth and
bud, that it may give seed to the sower, and bread to the eater: so shall my
Word be that goeth forth out of my mouth: it
shall not return unto me void, but it
shall accomplish that which I please (it may not that which we please), and it shall prosper in the
thing whereto I sent it" (#Isa 55:10,11). Was it not
this assurance that sustained the beloved apostle when he declared
"Therefore (see context) I endure all things for the elect's sake" (#2Ti
2:10)! Yea, is not this same lesson to be
learned from the blessed example of the Lord Jesus! When we read that he said
to the people, "Ye also have seen me, and
believe not", he fell back upon the sovereign pleasure of the one who
sent him, saying, "All that the
Father giveth me shall come to me,
and him that cometh to me I will in no wise cast out" (#Joh 6:36,37). He knew
that his labour would not be in vain. He knew God's Word would not return unto
him "void." He knew that "God's elect" would come to him and believe on him. And this same assurance fills
the soul of every servant who intelligently rests upon the blessed truth of
God's sovereignty.
Ah fellow Christian worker, God has not sent us forth to
"draw a bow at a venture". The success of the ministry which he has
committed into our hands is not left contingent on the fickleness of the wills
in those to whom we preach. How gloriously encouraging, how soul sustaining the
assurance are those words of our Lord's, if we rest on them in simple faith:
"And other sheep I have ("have" mark you, not "will have"; "have", because given to him
by the Father before the foundation of the world), which are not of this fold
(i.e. the Jewish fold then existing): them also I must bring, and they shall
hear my voice" (#Joh 16:1-33). Not simply, they ought
to hear my voice, not simply "they may
hear my voice", not "they will do so if they are willing." There is no "if", no
"perhaps", no uncertainty about it. "They shall hear my voice" is his own positive, unqualified,
absolute promise. Here then, is where faith
is to rest! Continue your quest, dear friend, after the "other sheep"
of Christ's. Be not discouraged because the "goats" heed not his
voice as you preach the Gospel. Be faithful, be scriptural, be persevering, and
Christ may use even you to be his mouthpiece in calling some of his lost sheep
unto himself. "Therefore, my beloved brethren, be ye stedfast, unmoveable,
always abounding in the work of the Lord, forasmuch as ye know that your labour is not
in vain in the Lord" (#1Co 15:58).
It now remains for us to offer a few closing reflections and our
happy task is finished.
God's sovereign election of
certain ones to salvation is a MERCIFUL provision.
The sufficient answer to all the wicked accusations that the doctrine of
Predestination is cruel, horrible, and unjust, is that, unless God had chosen certain ones to salvation, none would have been saved, for
"there is none that seeketh after God" (#Ro 3:11). This is
no mere inference of ours but the definite teaching of Holy Scripture. Attend
closely to the words of the apostle in #Ro 9:1-33, where this
theme is fully discussed--"Though the number of the children of Israel be
as the sand of the sea, a remnant
shall be saved ... And as Isaiah said before, Except the Lord of hosts had
left us a seed, we had been as Sodom, and
been made like unto Gomorrah" (#Ro 9:27,29). The
teaching of this passage is unmistakable: but for divine interference, Israel
would have become as Sodom and Gomorrah. Had God left Israel alone, human
depravity would have run its course to its own tragic end. But God left Israel
a "remnant" or "seed." Of old the cities of the plain had
been obliterated for their sin, and none was left to survive them; and so it
would have been in Israel's case had not God "left" or spared a
remnant. Thus it is with the human race: but for God's sovereign grace in
sparing a remnant, all of Adam's
descendants had perished in their sins. Therefore, we say that God's sovereign
election of certain ones to salvation is a merciful
provision. And, be it noted, in choosing the ones he did, God did no injustice to the others who were passed
by, for none had any right to salvation. Salvation is by grace, and the exercise of grace is a matter of pure sovereignty--God might save all or none, many or few, one or ten
thousand, just as he saw best. Should it be replied, But surely it were
"best" to save all. The
answer would be: We are not capable
of judging. We might have thought it
"best" never to have created Satan, never to have allowed sin to
enter the world, or having entered, to have brought the conflict between good
and evil to an end long before now. Ah! God's ways are not ours, and his ways are
"past finding out."
God foreordains everything
which comes to pass. his sovereign rule extends throughout the entire
universe and is over every creature. "For of him, and through him,
and to him, are all things" (#Ro 11:36). God initiates all things,
regulates all things, and all things are working unto his eternal glory.
"There is but one God, the Father, of
whom are all things, and we in him; and one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are all things, and we by
him" (#1Co 8: 6). And again, "According to the purpose of him who worketh all things after the counsel of his own will" (#Eph 1:11). Surely if
anything could be ascribed to chance
it is the drawing of lots, and yet
the Word of God expressly declares, "The lot is cast into the lap; but the whole disposing thereof is of the Lord" (#Pr 16:33)!!
God's wisdom in the
government of our world shall yet be completely vindicated before all created intelligences. God is no idle
spectator, looking on from a distant world at the happenings on our earth, but
is himself shaping everything to the ultimate promotion of his own glory. Even
now he is working out his eternal purpose, not only in spite of human and
Satanic opposition, but by means of them. How wicked and futile have been all
efforts to resist his will shall one day be as fully evident as when of old he
overthrew the rebellious Pharaoh and his hosts at the Red Sea.
It has been well said, "The end and object of all is the
glory of God. It is perfectly, divinely true, that `God hath ordained for his
own glory whatsoever comes to pass.' In order to guard this from all possibility
of mistake, we have only to remember who is this God, and what the glory that
he seeks. It is he who is the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ,--of him
in whom divine love came seeking not
her own, among us as `One that serveth.' It is he who, sufficient in himself,
can receive no real accession of glory from his creatures, but from
whom--`Love', as he is `Light',--cometh down every good and every perfect gift,
in whom is no variableness nor shadow of turning. Of his own alone can his
creatures give to him."
"The glory of such an one is found in the display of his own
goodness, righteousness, holiness, truth; in manifesting himself as in Christ
he has manifested himself and will forever. The glory of this God is what of
necessity all things must serve--adversaries
and evil as well as all else. He has
ordained it; his power will insure it; and when all apparent clouds and
obstructions are removed, then shall he rest--`rest in his love' forever,
although eternity only will suffice for the apprehension of the revelation. `God shall be all in all' (italics ours
throughout this paragraph) gives in six words the ineffable result" (F.W.
Grant on "Atonement").
That what we have written gives but an incomplete and imperfect
presentation of this most important subject we must sorrowfully confess.
Nevertheless, if it results in a clearer apprehension of the majesty of God and
his sovereign mercy we shall be amply repaid for our labours. If the reader has received blessing from the perusal
of these pages, let him not fail to return thanks to the Giver of every good
and every perfect gift, ascribing all
praise to his inimitable and sovereign grace.
"The Lord, our God, is clothed with might,
The winds and waves obey his will;
He speaks, and in the shining height
The sun and rolling worlds stand still.
Rebel ye waves, and o'er the land
With threatening aspect foam and roar,
The Lord hath spoken his command
That breaks your rage upon the shore.
Ye winds of night, your force combine--
Without his holy high behest
You shall not in a mountain pine
Disturb the little swallow's nest.
His voice sublime is heard afar;
In distant peals it fades and dies;
He binds the cyclone to his car
And sweeps the howling murky skies.
Great God! how infinite art thou,
What weak and worthless worms are we,
Let all the race of creatures bow
And seek salvation now from thee.
Eternity, with all its years
Stands ever present to thy view,
To thee there is nothing old appears Great God!
There can be nothing new.
Our lives through varied scenes are drawn,
And vexed with mean and trifling cares;
While thine eternal thought moves on
Thy fixed
and undisturbed affairs."
"Halleluia: for the Lord God
omnipotent reigneth" (#Re 19:6).
Appendix A, The Will Of God
In treating of the Will of God some theologians have
differentiated between his decretive
will and his permissive will,
insisting that there are certain things which God has positively foreordained,
but other things which he merely suffers to exist or happen. But such a
distinction is really no distinction at all, in as much as God only permits
that which is according to his will. No such distinction would have been
invented had these theologians discerned that God could have decreed the existence and activities of
sin without himself being the Author of sin. Personally, we much
prefer to adopt the distinction made by the older Calvinists between God's
secret and revealed will, or, to state it in another way, his disposing and his
preceptive will.
God's revealed will is made known in his Word, but his secret will
is his own hidden counsels. God's revealed will is the definer of our duty and
the standard of our responsibility. The primary and basic reason why I should
follow a certain course or do a certain thing is because it is God's will that I should, his will being
clearly defined for me in his Word. That I should not follow a certain course,
that I must refrain from doing certain things, is because they are contrary to God's revealed will. But
suppose I disobey God's Word, then do
I not cross his will? And if so, how
can it still be true that God's will is always
done and his counsel accomplished at all times? Such questions should make
evident the necessity for the distinction here advocated. God's revealed will is frequently crossed, but his secret
will is never thwarted. That it is
legitimate for us to make such a distinction concerning God's will is clear
from Scripture. Take these two passages: "For this is the will of God,
even your sanctification" (#1Th 4:3); "For
who hath resisted his will?" (#Ro 9:19). Would any
thoughtful reader declare that God's "will" has precisely the same
meaning in both of these passages? We surely hope not. The first passage refers
to God's revealed will, the latter to his secret will. The first passage
concerns our duty, the latter declares that God's secret purpose is immutable
and must come to pass notwithstanding the creature's insubordination. God's
revealed will is never done perfectly or fully by any of us, but his secret
will never fails of accomplishment even in the minutest particular. His secret
will mainly concerns future events;
his revealed will, our present duty:
the one has to do with his irresistible purpose, the other with his manifested
pleasure: the one is wrought upon us and accomplished through us, the other is
to be done by us.
The secret will of God is his eternal, unchanging purpose
concerning all things which he hath made, to be brought about by certain means
to their appointed ends: of this God expressly declares "My counsel shall
stand, and I will do all my
pleasure" (#Isa 46:10). This is the absolute, efficacious will of God, always effected,
always fulfilled. The revealed will of God contains not his purpose and decree
but our duty,--not what he will do
according to his eternal counsel, but what we
should do if we would please him, and this is expressed in the precepts and
promises of his Word. Whatever God has determined within himself, whether to do
himself, or to do by others, or to suffer to be done, while it is in his own
breast, and is not made known by any event in providence, or by precept, or by
prophecy, is his secret will. Such are the deep things of God, the thoughts of
his heart, the counsels of his mind, which are impenetrable to all creatures.
But when these are made known they become his revealed will: such is almost the
whole of the book of Revelation, wherein God has made known to us "things
which must shortly come to pass" (#Re 1:1--"must"
because he has eternally purposed that they should).
It has been objected by Arminian theologians that the division of
God's will into secret and revealed is untenable, because it makes God to have
two different wills, the one opposed to the other. But this is a mistake, due
to their failure to see that the secret and revealed will of God respect
entirely different objects. If God should require and forbid the same thing, or
if he should decree the same thing should and should not exist, then would his
secret and revealed will be contradictory and purposeless. If those who object
to the secret and revealed will of God being inconsistent would only make the
same distinction in this case that they do in many other cases, the seeming
inconsistency would at once disappear. How often do men draw a sharp
distinction between what is desirable in its
own nature and what is not desirable all
things considered. For example, the fond parent does not desire simply considered to punish his offending child,
but, all things considered, he knows
it is his bounden duty, and so corrects his child. And though he tells his
child he does not desire to punish
him, but that he is satisfied it is for the best all things considered to do so, then an intelligent child would see
no inconsistency in what his father says and does. Just so the All-wise Creator
may consistently decree to bring to pass things which he hates, forbids and
condemns. God chooses that some things shall exist which he thoroughly hates
(in their intrinsic nature), and he also chooses that some things shall not yet
exist which he perfectly loves (in their intrinsic nature). For example: he
commanded that Pharaoh should let his people go, because that was right in the nature of things, yet, he had
secretly declared that Pharaoh should not
let his people go, not because it was right in Pharaoh to refuse, but because
it was best all things considered
that he should not let them go--i.e.
best because it subserved God's larger purpose.
Again; God commands us to be perfectly holy in this life (#Mt 5:48), because
this is right in the nature of things,
but he has decreed that no man shall be perfectly holy in this life, because
this is best all things considered that none shall be perfectly holy
(experimentally) before they leave this world. Holiness is one thing, the
taking place of holiness is another; so, sin is one thing, the taking place of
sin is another. When God requires holiness his preceptive or revealed will
respects the nature or moral excellence of holiness; but when he decrees that
holiness shall not take place (fully and perfectly) his secret or decretive
will respects only the event of it not taking place. So, again, when he forbids
sin, his preceptive or revealed will respects only the nature or moral evil of
sin; but when he decrees that sin shall
take place, his secret will respects only its actual occurrence to serve his
good purpose. Thus the secret and revealed will of God respect entirely
different objects.
God's will of decree is not his will in the same sense as his will
of command is. Therefore, there is no difficulty in supposing that one may be
contrary to the other. His will, in both senses, is his inclination. Everything
that concerns his revealed will is perfectly agreeable to his nature, as when
he commands love, obedience, and service from his creatures. But that which
concerns his secret will has in view his ultimate end, that to which all things
are now working. Thus, he decreed the entrance of sin into his universe, though
his own holy nature hates all sin with infinite abhorrence, yet, because it is
one of the means by which his appointed end is to be reached he suffered it to
enter. God's revealed will is the
measure of our responsibility and the determiner of our duty. With God's secret
will we have nothing to do: that is his concern. But, God knowing that we
should fail to perfectly do his revealed will ordered his eternal counsels
accordingly, and these eternal counsels, which make up his secret will, though
unknown to us are, though unconsciously, fulfilled in and through us.
Whether the reader is prepared to accept the above distinction in
the will of God or not he must acknowledge that the commands of Scripture
declare God's revealed will, and he must also allow that sometimes God wills not to hinder a breach of those
commands, because he does not as a
fact so hinder it. God wills to permit sin as is evident, for he does permit it. Surely none will say
that God himself does what he does not will
to do.
Finally, let it be said again that, my responsibility with regard
to the will of God is measured by what he has
made known in his Word. There I learn that it is my duty to use the means of his providing, and to
humbly pray that he may be pleased to
bless them to me. To refuse so to do on the ground that I am ignorant of what
may or may not be his secret counsels concerning me, is not only absurd, but
the height of presumption. We repeat: the secret will of God is none of our
business; it is his revealed will
which measures our accountability. That there is no conflict whatever between
the secret and the revealed will of God is made clear from the fact that, the
former is accomplished by my use of the means laid down in the latter.
Appendix B, The Case Of Adam
In our chapter on God's Sovereignty and Human Responsibility we
dealt only with the responsibility of man considered as a fallen creature, and
at the close of the discussion it was pointed out how that the measure and
extent of our responsibility varies in different individuals, according to the
advantages they have received and the privileges they have enjoyed, which is a
truth clearly established by the declaration of the Saviour recorded in #Lu 12:47,48, "And
that servant, which knew his lord's will, and prepared not himself, neither did
according to his will, shall be beaten with many stripes. But he that knew not,
and did not commit things worthy of stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes.
For unto whomsoever much is given, of him shall be much required: and to whom
men have committed much, of him they will ask the more".
Now, strictly speaking, there are only two men who have ever
walked this earth which were endowed with full and unimpaired responsibility,
and they were the first and last Adam's. The responsibility of each of the
rational descendants of Adam, while real, and sufficient to establish them
accountable to their Creator is, nevertheless, limited in degree, limited
because impaired through the effects of the Fall.
Not only is the responsibility of each descendant of Adam sufficient to constitute him, personally an accountable creature (that
is, as one so constituted that he ought
to do right and ought not to do
wrong), but originally every one of us was also endowed, judicially, with full and unimpaired
responsibility, not in ourselves, but, in
Adam. It should ever be borne in mind that not only was Adam the father of
the human race seminally, but he was
also the head of the race legally.
When Adam was placed in Eden he stood there as
our representative, so that what he did is reckoned to the account of each
for whom he acted.
It is beside our present purpose to enter here into a lengthy discussion
of the Federal Headship of Adam {a}, suffice it now to refer the reader to #Ro 5:12-19 where this
truth is dealt with by the Holy Spirit. In the heart of this most important
passage we are told that Adam was "the
figure of him that was to come" (#Ro 5:14), that is,
of Christ. In what sense, then, was
Adam "the figure" of Christ? The answer must be, In that he was a
Federal Head; in that he acted on the behalf of a race of men; in that he was
one who has legally, as well as vitally, affected all connected with him. It is
for this reason that the Lord Jesus is in #1Co 15:45 denominated
"the last Adam", that is,
the Head of the new creation, as the first Adam was the Head of the old
creation.
In Adam, then, each of us stood. As the representative of the
human race the first man acted. As then Adam was created with full and
unimpaired responsibility, unimpaired because there was no evil nature within
him; and as we were all "in Adam", it necessarily follows that all of
us, originally, were also endowed
with full and unimpaired responsibility. Therefore, in Eden, it was not merely
the responsibility of Adam as a single person that was tested, but it was human
responsibility, the responsibility of the race, as a whole and in part, which
was on trial.
Webster defines responsibility first, as "liable to
account"; second, as "able to discharge an obligation". Perhaps
the meaning and scope of the term responsibility might be expressed and summed
up in the one word oughtness.
God-wards, responsibility respects that which is due the Creator from the creature, and which the creature is under
moral obligations to render.
In the light of the above definition it is at once apparent that
responsibility is something that must be placed
on trial. And as a fact, this is, as we learn from the inspired record,
exactly what transpired in Eden. Adam was placed on probation. His obligations
to God were put to the test. His loyalty to the creator was tried out. The test
consisted of obedience to his maker's command. Of a certain tree he was
forbidden to eat.
But right here a very formidable difficulty confronts us. From God's standpoint the result of Adam's probation was not left
in uncertainty. Before he formed him out of the dust of the ground and breathed
into his nostrils the breath of life, God knew exactly how the appointed test
would terminate. With this statement every Christian reader must be in accord,
for, to deny God's foreknowledge is to deny his omniscience, and this is to
repudiate one of the fundamental attributes of Deity. But we must go further:
not only had God a perfect foreknowledge of the outcome of Adam's trial, not
only did his omniscient eye see Adam eating of the forbidden fruit, but he decreed beforehand that he should do so. This is evident not only
from the general fact that nothing
happens save that which the Creator and Governor of the universe has
eternally purposed, but also from the express declaration of Scripture that
Christ as a Lamb "verily was
foreordained before the foundation of the world" (#1Pe 1:20). If, then,
God had foreordained before the foundation of the world that Christ should, in
due time, be offered as a sacrifice for sin, then it is unmistakably evident
that God had also foreordained sin should enter the world, and if so, that Adam
should transgress and fall. In full harmony with this, God himself placed in Eden the tree of the knowledge of good and
evil, and also allowed the Serpent to enter and deceive Eve.
Here then is the difficulty: If God has eternally decreed that
Adam should eat of the tree, how
could he be held responsible not to
eat of it? Formidable as the problem appears, nevertheless, it is capable of a
solution, a solution, moreover, which can be grasped even by the finite mind.
The solution is to be found in the distinction between God's secret will and
his revealed will. As stated in Appendix A 1411, human responsibility is
measured by our knowledge of God's revealed
will; what God has told us, not what
he has not told us, is the definer of our duty. So it was with Adam.
That God had decreed sin should enter this world
through the disobedience of our first parents was a secret hid in his own breast. Of this Adam knew nothing, and that made all the difference so far
as his responsibility was concerned. Adam was quite unacquainted with the
Creator's hidden counsels. What concerned him was God's revealed will. And that was
plain! God had forbidden him to
eat of the tree, and that was enough. But God went further: he even warned Adam
of the dire consequences which would follow should he disobey--death would be
the penalty. Transgression, then, on the part of Adam was entirely without excuse. Created with no evil nature in him, with a will in perfect
equipoise, placed in the fairest environment, given dominion over all the lower
creation, allowed full liberty with only a single restriction upon him, plainly
warned of what would follow an act of insubordination to God, there was every
possible inducement for Adam to preserve his innocence; and, should he fail and
fall, then by every principle of righteousness his blood must lie upon his own
head, and his guilt be imputed to all in whose behalf he acted.
Had God
disclosed to Adam his purpose that sin would enter this world, and that he had
decreed Adam should eat of the
forbidden fruit, it is obvious that Adam could not have been held responsible for the eating of it. But in that God withheld the knowledge of his counsels
from Adam, his accountability was not
interfered with.
Again;
had God created Adam with a bias toward evil, then human responsibility had
been impaired and man's probation merely one in name. But inasmuch as Adam was
included among that which God, at the end of the sixth day, pronounced
"Very good", and, inasmuch as man was made "upright" (#Ec 7:29), then every
mouth must be stopped and the whole world must acknowledge itself "guilty before God" (#Ro 3:19).
Once more, it needs to be carefully borne in mind that God did not
decree that Adam should sin and then
inject into Adam an inclination to evil,
in order that his decree might be carried out. No; "God cannot be tempted,
neither tempteth he any man" (#Jas 1:13). Instead,
when the Serpent came to tempt Eve, God caused her to remember his command forbidding to eat of the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil and of the penalty attached to disobedience! Thus,
though God had decreed the Fall, in
no sense was he the Author of Adam's
sin, and at no point was Adam's responsibility impaired. Thus may we admire and
adore the "manifold wisdom of
God", in devising a way whereby his eternal decree should be accomplished,
and yet the responsibility of his creatures be preserved intact.
Perhaps a further word should be added concerning the decretive
will of God, particularly in its relation to evil. First of all we take the
high ground that, whatever things God does or permits, are right, just, and
good, simply because God does or
permits them. When Luther gave answer to the question, "Whence it was that
Adam was permitted to fall, and corrupt his whole posterity; when God could
have prevented him from falling, etc", he said, "God is a Being whose
will acknowledges no cause: neither is it for us to prescribe rules to his
sovereign pleasure, or call him to account for what he does. He has neither
superior nor equal; and his will is the rule of all things. He did not thus
will such and such things because they were right, and he was bound to will
them; but they are therefore equitable and right because he wills them. The
will of man, indeed, may be influenced and moved; but God's will never can. To
assert the contrary is to undeify him" (De Servo, Arb. c/ 153).
To affirm that God decreed the entrance of sin into his universe,
and that he foreordained all its fruits and activities, is to say that which,
at first may shock the reader; but reflection should show that it is far more
shocking to insist that sin has invaded his dominions against his will, and that its exercise is outside his jurisdiction: for in such a case where would be his
omnipotency? No; to recognise that God has foreordained all the activities of
evil, is to see that he is the Governor
of sin: his will determines its exercise, his power regulates its bounds (#Ps 76:10). He is
neither the Inspirer nor the Infuser of sin in any of his creatures, but he is its Master, by which we mean God's
management of the wicked is so entire that, they can do nothing save that which
his hand and counsel, from everlasting, determined should be done.
Though nothing contrary to holiness and righteousness can ever
emanate from God, yet he has, for his own wise ends, ordained his creatures to
fall into sin. Had sin never been permitted, how could the justice of God have
been displayed in punishing it? How could the wisdom of God have been manifested
in so wondrously overruling it? How could the grace of God have been exhibited
in pardoning it? How could the power of God have been exercised in subduing it?
A very solemn and striking proof of Christ's
acknowledgment of God's decretal of sin is seen in his treatment of Judas. The
Saviour knew full well that Judas would betray him, yet we never read that he
expostulated with him! Instead, he said to him, "That thou doest, do quickly" (#Joh 13:27)! Yet, mark
this was said after he had received
the sop and Satan had taken possession of his heart. Judas was already prepared
for and determined on his traitorous work, therefore did Christ permissively
(bowing to his Father's ordination) bid him go forth to his awful work.
Thus, though God is not
the author of sin, and though sin is contrary to his holy nature, yet the existence and operations of it are not contrary to
his will, but subservient to it. God
never tempts man to sin, but he has, by his eternal counsels (which he is now
executing), determined its course.
Moreover, as we have shown in 1388, though God has decreed man's sins,
yet is man responsible not to commit them, and blameable because he does.
Strikingly were these two sides of this awful subject brought together by
Christ in that statement of his: "Woe unto the world because of offences!
For it must needs be that offences
come (because God has foreordained them); but
woe to that man by whom the offence cometh" (#Mt 18:7). So, too,
though all which took place at Calvary was by the "determinate counsel and
foreknowledge of God" (#Ac 2:23), nevertheless, "wicked
hands" crucified the Lord of glory, and, in consequence, his blood has
righteously rested upon them and on their children. High mysteries are these,
yet it is both our happy privilege and bounden duty to humbly receive
whatsoever God has been pleased to reveal concerning them in his Word of Truth.
{a} Though there is deep
and widespread need for this, and we
hope ere long to write upon this subject in another book.
Appendix C, The Meaning Of
"Kosmos" In #Joh 3:16
It may appear to some of our readers that the exposition we have
given of #Joh 3:16 in the chapter on "Difficulties and Objections" is a
forced and unnatural one, in as much as our definition of the term
"world" seems to be out of harmony with the meaning and scope of this
word in other passages, where, to supply the
world of believers (God's elect) as a definition of "world" would
make no sense. Many have said to us, "Surely, 'world' means world, that is, you, me, and everybody." In reply we
would say: We know from experience how difficult it is to set aside the
"traditions of men" and come to a passage which we have heard
explained in a certain way scores of times, and study it carefully for
ourselves without bias. Nevertheless,
this is essential if we would learn the mind of God.
Many people suppose they already
know the simple meaning of #Joh 3:16, and therefore they conclude that
no diligent study is required of them to discover the precise teaching of this verse. Needless to say, such an
attitude shuts out any further light which they otherwise might obtain on the
passage. Yet, if anyone will take a concordance and read carefully the various
passages in which the term "world" (as a translation of
"kosmos") occurs, he will quickly perceive that to ascertain the
precise meaning of the word "world" in any given passage is not
nearly so easy as is popularly supposed. The word "kosmos", and its
English equivalent "world", is not
used with a uniform significance in
the New Testament. Very far from it. It is used in quite a number of different ways. Below we will refer to a
few passages where this term occurs, suggesting a tentative definition in each
case:
1 "Kosmos" is used of the Universe as a whole: #Ac 17:24--
"God that made the
world and all things therein, seeing that he is Lord of heaven and earth."
2 "Kosmos" is used of the earth: #Joh 13:1
Eph 1:4, etc., etc.--
"When Jesus knew that his hour was come that he should depart
out of this world unto the Father, having loved his own which were in the world he loved them unto the end." "Depart out of this
world" signifies, leave this earth.
"According as he hath chosen us in him before the foundation of the world." This expression signifies,
before the earth was founded-- compare #Job 38:4 etc.
3 "Kosmos" is used of the world system: #Joh 12:31 etc.
"Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the Prince of this world
be cast out"--compare #Mt 4:8 and #1Jo 5:19, R.V.
4 "Kosmos" is used of the whole human race: #Ro 3:19, etc.--
"Now we know that what things soever the law saith, it saith
to them who are under the law: that every
mouth may be stopped, and all the world may become guilty before
God."
5 "Kosmos" is used of humanity minus believers: #Joh 15:18; #Ro 3:6
"If the world hate
you, ye know that it hated me before it hated you." Believers do not
"hate" Christ, so that "the world" here must signify the world of unbelievers in contrast from believers
who love Christ.
"God forbid: for then how shall God judge the world." Here is another passage where "the
world" cannot mean "you,
me, and everybody", for believers
will not be "judged" by God, see #Joh 5:24. So that
here, too, it must be the world of unbelievers
which is in view.
6 "Kosmos" is used of Gentiles in contrast from Jews: #Ro 11:12 etc.
"Now if the fall of them (Israel) be the riches of the world, and the diminishing of them (Israel) the riches of the Gentiles; how much
more their (Israel's) fulness." Note how the first clause in italics is defined by the latter clause placed in
italics. Here, again, "the world" cannot
signify all humanity for it excludes
Israel!
7 "Kosmos" is used of believers only: #Joh 1:29
3:16,17 6:33 12:47;
#1Co 4:9 2Co 5:19. We leave our readers to turn to these
passages, asking them to note, carefully, exactly what is said and predicated of "the world" in each place.
Thus it will be seen that "kosmos" has at least seven
clearly defined different meanings in
the New Testament. It may be asked, has then God used a word thus to confuse
and confound those who read the Scriptures? We answer, No! nor has he written
his Word for lazy people who are too
dilatory, or too busy with the things of this world, or, like Martha, so much
occupied with "serving", they have no time and no heart to
"search" and "study" Holy Writ! Should it be asked further,
But how is a searcher of the Scriptures to know which of the above meanings the term "world" has in any
given passage? The answer is: This may be ascertained by a careful study of the
context, by diligently noting what is
predicated of "the world" in each passage, and by prayerfully
consulting other parallel passages to the one being studied.
The principal subject of #Joh 3:16 is Christ as the Gift of God. The first
clause tells us what moved God to "give" his only begotten
Son, and that was his great "love"; the second clause informs us for whom God "gave" his Son,
and that is for, "whosoever (or, better, `every one') believeth";
while the last clause makes known why
God "gave" his Son (his purpose), and that is, that everyone that
believeth "should not perish but have everlasting life." That
"the world" in #Joh 3:16 refers to the world of
believers (God's elect), in contradistinction from "the world of the ungodly" (#2Pe 2:5), is
established, unequivocally established, by a comparison of the other passages which speak of God's "love." "God commendeth
his love toward us"--the saints,
#Ro
5:8. "Whom the Lord
loveth he chasteneth"--every
son, #Heb 12:6. "We love him, because he first loved us"--believers, #1Jo 4:19. The wicked
God "pities" (see #Mt 18:33). Unto the unthankful and evil God
is "kind" (see #Lu 6:35). The vessels of wrath he endures "with much
longsuffering" (see #Ro 9:22). But "his own" God "loves"!!
Appendix D, #1Jo 2:2
There is one passage more than any other which is appealed to by
those who believe in universal redemption, and which at first sight appears to
teach that Christ died for the whole human race. We have therefore decided to
give it a detailed examination and exposition.
"And he is the propitiation for our sins: and not for ours
only, but also for the sins of the whole world" (#1Jo 2:2). This is
the passage which, apparently, most favours the Arminian view of the Atonement,
yet if it be considered attentivily it will be seen that it does so only in appearance, and not in reality.
Below we offer a number of conclusive proofs to show that this verse does not teach that Christ has
propitiated God on behalf of all the sins of all men.
In the first place, the fact that this verse opens with
"and" necessarily links it with what has gone before. We, therefore,
give a literal word for word translation of #1Jo 2:1 from
Bagster's Interlinear: "Little children my, these things I write to you,
that ye may not sin; and if any one should sin, a Paraclete we have with the
Father, Jesus Christ (the) righteous". It will thus be seen that the
apostle John is here writing to and about the saints of God. His immediate purpose was twofold: first, to
communicate a message that would keep God's children from sinning; second, to
supply comfort and assurance to those who might sin, and, in consequence, be
cast down and fearful that the issue would prove fatal. He, therefore, makes
known to them the provision which God has made for just such an emergency. This
we find at the end of #1Jo 2:1 and throughout #1Jo 2:2. The ground of comfort is twofold:
let the downcast and repentant believer (#1Jo 1:9) be assured
that, first, he has an "Advocate with the Father"; second, that this
Advocate is "the propitiation for our sins". Now believers only may take comfort from
this, for they alone have an "Advocate", for them alone is Christ
the propitiation, as is proven by linking
the Propitiation ("and") with "the Advocate"!
In the second place, if other passages in the New Testament which
speak of "propitiation", be compared with #1Jo 2:2, it will be
found that it is strictly limited in
its scope. For example, in #Ro 3:25 we read that God set forth Christ
"a propitiation through faith in
his blood". If Christ is a propitiation "through faith", then he
is not a "propitiation" to
those who have no faith! Again, in #Heb 2:17 we read,
"To make propitiation for the sins of the
people" (#Heb 2:17, R.V.).
In the third place, who
are meant when John says, "He is the propitiation for our sins"? We answer, Jewish
believers. And a part of the proof on which we base this assertion we now
submit to the careful attention of the reader.
In #Ga 2:9 we are told that John,
together with James and Cephas, were apostles "unto the circumcision"
(i.e. Israel). In keeping with this,
the Epistle of James is addressed to "the twelve tribes, which are
scattered abroad" (#Jas 1:1). So, the first Epistle of Peter is addressed to "the elect
who are sojourners of the Dispersion" (#1Pe 1:1, R.V.). And
John also is writing to saved
Israelites, but for saved Jews and saved Gentiles.
Some of the evidences that John is writing to saved Jews
are as follows.
(a) In the opening verse he says of Christ, "Which we have seen with our eyes ... and our
hands have handled". How impossible it would have been for the Apostle
Paul to have commenced any of his
epistles to Gentile saints with such
language!
(b) "Brethren, I write no new commandment unto you, but an
old commandment which ye had from the beginning" (#1Jo 2:7). The
"beginning" here referred to is the beginning of the public
manifestation of Christ--in proof compare #1Jo 1:1; 2:13, etc. Now
these believers the apostle tells us, had
the "old commandment" from the
beginning. This was true of Jewish
believers, but it was not true of Gentile
believers.
(c) "I write unto you, fathers, because ye have known him from the beginning" (#1Jo 2:13). Here,
again, it is evident that it is Jewish
believers that are in view.
(d) "Little children, it is the last time: and as ye have heard that Antichrist shall come,
even now are there many antichrists; whereby we know that it is the last time. They went out from us, but they were not of us" (#1Jo 2:18,19). These
brethren to whom John wrote had heard
from Christ himself that Antichrist should come (see #Mt 24:1-51). The
"many antichrists" whom John declares "went out from us" were all Jews, for during the first century none
but a Jew posed as the Messiah.
Therefore, when John says "He is the propitiation for our sins" he can only mean for the sins of Jewish believers. {a}
In the fourth place, when John added, "And not for ours only,
but also for the whole world",
he signified that Christ was the propitiation for the sins of Gentile believers too, for, as previously shown, "the world" is a term contrasted from Israel. This
interpretation is unequivocally established by a careful comparison of #1Jo 2:2 with #Joh 11:51,
52, which is a strictly parallel passage: "And this spake he
not of himself: but being high priest that year, he prophesied that Jesus
should die for that nation; And not for that nation only, but that also he
should gather together in one the children of God that were scattered
abroad". Here Caiaphas, under inspiration, made known for whom Jesus should
"die". Notice now the correspondency of his prophecy with this
declaration of John's:
"He is the propitiation for our (believing Israelites)
sins". "He prophesied that Jesus should die for that nation".
"And not for ours only". "And not for that nation
only".
"But also for the whole world"-- That is, Gentile
believers scattered throughout the earth.
"He should gather together in one the children of God that
were scattered abroad".
In the fifth place, the above interpretation is confirmed by the
fact that no other is consistent or intelligible. If the "whole
world" signifies the whole human race, then the first clause and the
"also" in the second clause are "also" in the second clause
are absolutely meaningless. If Christ is the propitiation for everybody, it would be idle tautology to
say, first, "He is the propitiation for our sins and also for
everybody". There could be no "also" if he is the propitiation
for the entire human family. Had the apostle meant to affirm that Christ is a universal propitiation he had
omitted the first clause of #1Jo 2:2, and simply said, "He is the
propitiation for the sins of the whole world." Confirmatory of "not
for ours (Jewish believers) only, but also for the whole world"--Gentile
believers, too; compare #Joh 10:16; 17:20.
In the sixth place, our definition of "the whole world"
is in perfect accord with other passages in the New Testament. For example:
"Whereof ye heard before in the word of the truth of the Gospel; which is
come unto you, as it is in all the
world" (#Col 1:5,6). Does "all the world" here mean, absolutely and
unqualifiedly, all mankind? Had all the human family heard the Gospel? No; the
apostle's obvious meaning is that, the Gospel, instead of being confined to the
land of Judea, had gone abroad, without restraint, into Gentile lands. So in #Ro 1:8:
"First, I thank my God through Jesus Christ for you all, that your faith
is spoken of throughout the whole
world". The apostle is here referring to the faith of these Roman
saints being spoken of in a way of commendation.
But certainly all mankind did not so speak of their faith! It was the whole
world of believers that he was
referring to! In #Re 12:9 we read of Satan "which deceiveth the whole world." But again in this expression cannot be
understood as a universal one, for #Mt 24:24 tells us
that Satan does not and cannot deceive God's elect. Here it is "the whole
world" of unbelievers.
In the seventh place, to insist that "the whole world"
in #1Jo 2:2 signifies the entire human race is to undermine the very
foundations of our faith. If Christ is the propitiation for those that are lost
equally as much as for those that are saved, then what assurance have we that
believers too may not be lost? If Christ is the propitiation for those now in
hell, what guarantee have I that I may not end in hell? The bloodshedding of
the incarnate Son of God is the only
thing which can keep any one out of hell, and if many for whom that precious blood made propitiation are now in
the awful place of the damned, then may not that blood prove inefficacious for
me! Away with such a God dishonouring thought.
However men may quibble and wrest the Scriptures, one thing is
certain: The Atonement is no failure. God will not allow that precious and
costly sacrifice, to fail in accomplishing, completely, that which it was
designed to effect. Not a drop of that holy blood was shed in vain. In the last
great day there shall stand forth no disappointed and defeated Saviour, but one
who "shall see of the travail of
his soul and be satisfied" (#Isa 53:11). These are
not our words, but the infallible assertion of him who declares, "My
counsel shall stand, and I will do all
my pleasure" (#Isa 64:10). Upon this impregnable rock we take our stand. Let others rest
on the sands of human speculation and twentieth century theorising if they
wish. That is their business. But to God they will yet have to render an
account. For our part we had rather be railed at as a narrow minded, out of
date, hyper-Calvinist, than be found repudiating God's truth by reducing the
divinely efficacious atonement to a mere fiction.
{a} It is true that many
things in John's Epistle apply equally to believing Jews and believing Gentiles. Christ is the Advocate of the one, as much
as of the other. The same may be said of many things in the Epistle of James
which is also a catholic, or general epistle, though expressly
addressed to the twelve tribes scattered abroad.
Principal Texts Examined
Ge
6:3
Ge
6:6
Ge
20:6
Ge
20:6
Ex
4:21
Ex
34:34
Nu
23:12-20
1Sa
3:18
1Sa
6:1-21
2Ch 20:5,6
Ps 110:3
Ps 110:3
Ps 145:15-18
Pr
16:1
Pr
16:9
Pr
19:21
Isa 10:5-7
Isa 46:9,10
Am
4:7-10
Jon
2:9
Mt
23:37
Mt
25:41
Lu
14:16-23
Joh
3:8
Joh
3:16
Joh
6:38
Joh
6:44
Joh
8:36
Joh 11:49-52
Joh 16:8-11
Joh 19:10
Ac
7:51,52
Ac
13:48
Ac
17:28
Ac
17:30
Ro
9:17-23
Ro
11:5
1Co
1:26-29
1Co
4:7
2Co
5:14
Eph
1:3-5
2Th
2:13
2Th
2:13
1Ti
2:5,6
1Ti
5:21
2Ti
1:9
Heb
2:9
1Pe
1:2
1Pe
1:2
1 2Pe 2:12
Jude 1:8
Re
4:11
Re
17:17